Selected quad for the lemma: son_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
son_n father_n holy_a incomprehensible_a 13,551 5 13.7213 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A76798 Expositions and sermons upon the ten first chapters of the Gospel of Jesus Christ, according to Matthew. Written by Christopher Blackwood, preacher to a Church of Christ in the city of Dublin in Ireland. Blackwood, Christopher. 1659 (1659) Wing B3098; ESTC R207680 612,607 923

There are 27 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

man_n rom_n 10.13_o whosoever_o shall_v call_v on_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n shall_v be_v save_v it_o include_v repentance_n humiliation_n joy_n in_o good_n goodness_n 1_o pet._n 1.17_o psal_n 72.20_o the_o prayer_n of_o david_n be_v end_v that_o be_v his_o instruction_n his_o thanksgiving_n his_o confession_n his_o humiliation_n 16_o it_o be_v thyself_o gain_v by_o prayer_n god_n get_v nothing_o thereby_o and_o if_o thou_o omit_v it_o or_o careless_o perform_v it_o thyself_o have_v the_o loss_n thereby_o job_n 22.3_o 17_o it_o be_v one_o of_o god_n title_n to_o hear_v prayer_n psal_n 65.20_o thou_o that_o hear_v prayer_n or_o thou_o that_o be_v hear_v prayer_n as_o some_o translate_v it_o as_o if_o it_o be_v a_o continual_a work_n in_o god_n to_o hear_v prayer_n prince_n will_v not_o lose_v any_o part_n of_o their_o title_n but_o if_o thou_o call_v not_o on_o god_n thou_o do_v do_v what_o in_o thou_o lie_v to_o deprive_v god_n of_o one_o of_o his_o title_n 18_o prayer_n be_v in_o some_o sense_n a_o christian_n utmost_a refuge_n though_o a_o man_n have_v be_v a_o grievous_a sinner_n yea_o a_o relapsed_a sinner_n yet_o if_o he_o can_v pray_v there_o be_v hope_n a_o beggar_n that_o have_v nothing_o to_o live_v by_o but_o beg_v have_v need_n beg_v hard_a so_o we_o have_v nothing_o to_o live_v on_o but_o pray_v i_o mean_v nothing_o to_o be_v do_v on_o our_o part_n to_o obtain_v mercy_n the_o promise_n of_o god_n and_o the_o sense_n of_o god_n love_n be_v make_v over_o to_o we_o in_o the_o use_n of_o prayer_n when_o a_o man_n have_v nothing_o to_o maintain_v himself_o his_o wife_n and_o child_n but_o his_o finger_n end_n will_v he_o not_o be_v toil_a all_o the_o day_n prayer_n be_v a_o christian_n finger_n end_n 19_o it_o be_v the_o hard_a of_o all_o work_n hard_a than_o preach_v expound_v etc._n etc._n 2_o be_v exhort_v to_o pray_v in_o a_o right_a manner_n but_o how_o be_v that_o 1_o by_o fix_v our_o faith_n aright_o upon_o god_n as_o 1_o behold_v he_o invisible_a hence_o he_o use_v a_o voice_n but_o show_v no_o similitude_n deut._n 4.15_o because_o a_o voice_n be_v such_o a_o thing_n as_o can_v not_o be_v portray_v esa_n 40.18_o 2_o behold_v the_o father_n subsist_v in_o the_o son_n and_o the_o son_n in_o the_o father_n and_o the_o spirit_n in_o the_o father_n and_o in_o the_o son_n john_n 14.7_o 8._o 3_o apprehend_v the_o fullness_n of_o the_o godhead_n to_o dwell_v in_o christ_n bodily_a col._n 2.9_o 4_o that_o we_o may_v direct_v our_o prayer_n either_o to_o father_n son_n or_o spirit_n according_a as_o our_o necessity_n shall_v require_v yet_o we_o be_v to_o worship_v the_o trinity_n in_o unity_n and_o unity_n in_o trinity_n they_o be_v eternal_a almighty_a and_o incomprehensible_a yet_o be_v there_o not_o three_o eternal_n almighty_n or_o incomprehensibles_fw-fr there_o be_v one_o god_n of_o this_o be_v all_o thing_n know_v know_v in_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a spirit_n for_o why_o do_v the_o father_n beget_v the_o son_n of_o his_o own_o substance_n and_o out_o of_o the_o same_o bring_v forth_o the_o spirit_n which_o partake_v of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o essence_n and_o be_v esteem_v worthy_a of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o godhead_n but_o some_o will_v say_v do_v not_o that_o which_o beget_v differ_v from_o that_o which_o be_v beget_v and_o that_o which_o proceed_v from_o that_o whence_o it_o proceed_v because_o the_o father_n be_v not_o beget_v from_o who_o the_o son_n be_v beget_v and_o the_o holy_a spirit_n proceed_v therefore_o the_o son_n and_o spirit_n be_v not_o the_o same_o with_o the_o father_n the_o unbegotten_a and_o beget_v and_o proceed_v be_v not_o name_n of_o essence_n but_o the_o manner_n of_o existence_n and_o the_o manner_n of_o existence_n be_v denote_v by_o these_o name_n justin_n martyr_n expos_fw-la fidei_fw-la p._n 292._o we_o be_v to_o look_v upon_o the_o father_n that_o he_o be_v make_v of_o none_o neither_o create_v nor_o beget_v the_o son_n be_v of_o the_o father_n alone_o not_o make_v nor_o create_v but_o beget_v the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v of_o the_o father_n and_o son_n neither_o make_v nor_o beget_v but_o proceed_v joh._n 15.26_o so_o there_o be_v one_o father_n not_o three_o father_n one_o son_n not_o three_o son_n one_o holy_a ghost_n not_o three_o holy_a ghost_n and_o in_o this_o trinity_n none_o be_v afore_o or_o after_o another_o none_o be_v great_a or_o less_o than_o another_o but_o they_o be_v coeternal_a and_o coequal_a coessential_a and_o concausal_n and_o though_o there_o be_v three_o subsistence_n yet_o be_v there_o but_o one_o essence_n we_o be_v to_o profess_v one_o god_n the_o knowledge_n of_o who_o be_v in_o the_o father_n and_o son_n and_o spirit_n wherein_o the_o father_n son_n and_o spirit_n be_v acknowledge_v the_o existence_n of_o one_o godhead_n but_o whereby_o god_n do_v understand_v the_o communion_n of_o existence_n according_a to_o nature_n and_o essence_n for_o the_o unity_n be_v understand_v in_o the_o trinity_n and_o the_o trinity_n be_v acknowledge_v in_o the_o unity_n but_o after_o what_o manner_n that_o be_v i_o will_v neither_o ask_v it_o of_o other_o neither_o can_v i_o persuade_v myself_o the_o manner_n of_o these_o hide_v and_o unspeakable_a thing_n that_o i_o dare_v speak_v they_o with_o my_o filthy_a flesh_n ib._n 297._o 1_o jo._n 5.7_o these_o three_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d one_o thing_n or_o essence_n not_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d one_o person_n 5_o do_v not_o so_o direct_v your_o prayer_n to_o any_o subsistence_n in_o the_o trinity_n as_o to_o exclude_v the_o other_o but_o to_o include_v they_o 6_o in_o single_v out_o any_o one_o subsistence_n in_o the_o trinity_n we_o be_v to_o pitch_v most_o usual_o upon_o the_o father_n as_o he_o to_o who_o we_o direct_v our_o prayer_n through_o the_o mediation_n of_o christ_n and_o by_o the_o help_n of_o the_o spirit_n joh._n 16.23_o 1_o pet._n 1.17_o if_o you_o call_v upon_o the_o father_n etc._n etc._n not_o in_o respect_n of_o any_o superiority_n of_o power_n or_o glory_n but_o in_o respect_n of_o his_o firstness_n of_o order_n in_o subsist_v yet_o even_o then_o will_v it_o be_v very_o safe_a to_o look_v upon_o the_o father_n essential_o rather_o than_o personal_o yet_o in_o respect_n of_o order_n the_o father_n be_v first_o mention_v matth._n 28.19_o 1_o john_n 5.7_o 7_o forasmuch_o as_o christ_n promise_v to_o grant_v the_o request_n of_o his_o people_n john_n 14.13_o 14._o whatsoever_o you_o shall_v ask_v in_o my_o name_n i_o will_v do_v it_o it_o be_v twice_o repeat_v for_o further_o confirmation_n hence_o we_o may_v call_v upon_o christ_n the_o saint_n be_v describe_v by_o this_o note_n that_o they_o call_v on_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n act_v 9.14_o 1_o cor._n 1.2_o act_n 7.59_o 8_o forasmuch_o as_o we_o be_v baptize_v into_o the_o name_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n matth._n 28.19_o and_o he_o it_o be_v that_o sanctify_v we_o rom._n 15.16_o and_o renew_v we_o titus_n 3.5_o and_o make_v the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n with_o we_o heb._n 10.15_o 16_o 17._o and_o be_v not_o a_o bare_a motion_n or_o inspiration_n but_o a_o willing_a work_a subsistence_n who_o power_n grace_v into_o our_o heart_n rom._n 5.5_o who_o send_v forth_o apostle_n act_n 13.2_o 4._o and_o bind_v the_o conscience_n act_v 15.28_o and_o give_v his_o gift_n as_o he_o please_v 1_o cor._n 12.11_o enable_v so_o many_o to_o speak_v with_o tongue_n which_o they_o have_v never_o learn_v we_o may_v also_o call_v upon_o the_o holy_a ghost_n thus_o do_v the_o seraphim_n esai_n 6.1_o 3._o holy_a holy_a holy_a be_v the_o lord_n of_o host_n also_o psal_n 95.7_o 8._o compare_v with_o heb._n 3.7_o he_o who_o paul_n call_v the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o psalm_n be_v call_v god_n and_o the_o prophet_n call_v come_v let_v we_o worship_n and_o kneel_v down_o before_o the_o lord_n our_o maker_n revel_v 1.4_o 5._o john_n pray_v to_o each_o subsistence_n in_o the_o trinity_n grace_n and_o peace_n be_v to_o you_o from_o he_o which_o be_v and_o be_v and_o be_v to_o come_v and_o from_o the_o seven_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o from_o jesus_n christ_n the_o spirit_n be_v call_v by_o the_o name_n of_o seven_o spirit_n from_o his_o manifold_a gift_n and_o operation_n by_o spirit_n can_v be_v mean_v angel_n who_o still_o refuse_v worship_n apoc._n 19.10_o rev._n 22.8_o 9_o beside_o the_o spirit_n have_v incommunicable_a property_n of_o god_n as_o to_o search_v all_o thing_n yea_o the_o deep_a thing_n of_o god_n yea_o to_o know_v the_o thing_n of_o god_n as_o the_o spirit_n of_o a_o man_n know_v the_o thing_n of_o a_o man_n 1_o cor._n 2.10.11_o also_o the_o spirit_n be_v say_v to_o be_v omnipresent_v psal_n 139.7_o whither_o shall_v i_o go_v from_o thy_o
spirit_n the_o spirit_n be_v extend_v as_o far_o as_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o be_v every_o where_n yea_o this_o one_o spirit_n dwell_v in_o all_o the_o saint_n where_o ever_o they_o live_v eph._n 2.18_o as_o in_o a_o temple_n 1_o cor._n 3.17.6.19_o the_o spirit_n dwell_v not_o only_o by_o gift_n but_o in_o respect_n of_o substance_n he_o do_v not_o so_o give_v his_o gift_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v elsewhere_o but_o he_o be_v present_a to_o the_o gift_n of_o his_o creature_n by_o preserve_v govern_v add_v strength_n luth._o tom._n 4._o pag._n 402._o yea_o the_o action_n proper_a to_o god_n be_v ascribe_v to_o the_o spirit_n as_o to_o create_v job_n 33.4_o psal_n 33.6_o and_o to_o inspire_v the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n penman_n of_o scripture_n act_v 28.15_o the_o holy_a ghost_n speak_v by_o isaiah_n the_o prophet_n yea_o holy_a man_n of_o god_n speak_v as_o they_o be_v move_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 2_o pet._n 1.21_o yea_o the_o spirit_n be_v say_v to_o be_v one_o in_o essence_n with_o the_o father_n hence_o the_o spirit_n be_v to_o be_v call_v upon_o 9_o this_o god_n who_o we_o eye_n in_o prayer_n we_o be_v not_o to_o imagine_v subject_a to_o composition_n or_o division_n as_o though_o the_o father_n have_v one_o part_n of_o the_o godhead_n the_o son_n another_o and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n a_o three_o but_o the_o whole_a entire_a godhead_n be_v communicate_v from_o the_o father_n to_o the_o son_n and_o from_o father_n and_o son_n to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n so_o that_o there_o be_v no_o division_n but_o only_o a_o distinction_n without_o separation_n matth._n 3.16_o 17._o the_o spirit_n like_o a_o dove_n light_v upon_o he_o and_o a_o voice_n from_o heaven_n say_v this_o be_v my_o beloved_a son_n 2_o we_o must_v right_o apprehend_v jesus_n christ_n that_o as_o in_o the_o creed_n of_o athanasius_n we_o believe_v our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n rom._n 8.3_o 32._o so_o we_o believe_v he_o to_o be_v god_n and_o man_n god_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o father_n beget_v before_o the_o world_n and_o man_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o his_o mother_n bear_v in_o the_o world_n perfect_a god_n and_o perfect_a man_n of_o a_o reasonable_a soul_n and_o humane_a flesh_n subsist_v equal_a to_o the_o father_n as_o touch_v his_o godhead_n phil._n 2.6_o and_o inferior_a to_o the_o father_n touch_v his_o manhood_n who_o although_o he_o be_v god_n and_o man_n yet_o he_o be_v not_o two_o but_o one_o christ_n one_o not_o by_o conversion_n of_o the_o godhead_n into_o flesh_n but_o by_o take_v of_o the_o manhood_n into_o god_n one_o altogether_o not_o by_o confusion_n of_o substance_n but_o by_o unity_n of_o person_n for_o as_o the_o reasonable_a soul_n and_o flesh_n be_v one_o man_n so_o god_n and_o man_n be_v one_o christ_n who_o die_v and_o rise_v again_o and_o appear_v at_o god_n right_a hand_n in_o our_o behalf_n heb._n 9.24_o after_o the_o union_n of_o the_o light_n with_o the_o body_n of_o the_o sun_n no_o man_n can_v separate_v one_o from_o another_o to_o call_v this_o several_o the_o sun_n and_o that_o several_o the_o light_n but_o we_o call_v one_o sun_n the_o light_n so_o after_o the_o union_n no_o man_n will_v call_v this_o the_o son_n the_o word_n of_o god_n this_o the_o son_n to_o wit_n man_n but_o will_v understand_v both_o to_o be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o as_o one_o light_a and_o one_o sun_n now_o as_o one_o light_n and_o one_o sun_n be_v two_o nature_n one_o of_o the_o light_n and_o another_o of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o sun_n in_o like_a manner_n this_o son_n and_o lord_n and_o christ_n and_o only_o beget_v be_v one_o but_o the_o nature_n be_v two_o one_o which_o be_v above_o we_o the_o other_o we_o just_a mart._n expos_fw-la fidei_fw-la p._n 302._o through_o this_o lord_n jesus_n we_o have_v access_n with_o boldness_n to_o come_v to_o god_n joh._n 14.6_o ephes_n 3.12_o heb._n 10.22_o the_o sun_n shine_v alike_o to_o all_o every_o day_n but_o they_o that_o be_v quick_a of_o sight_n receive_v more_o of_o its_o beam_n but_o they_o that_o have_v weak_a eye_n by_o reason_n of_o their_o weakness_n can_v behold_v it_o so_o the_o sun_n of_o righteousness_n communicate_v his_o substance_n equal_o to_o all_o as_o god_n near_o at_o hand_n but_o we_o be_v blind_v with_o sin_n by_o reason_n of_o our_o blindness_n can_v endure_v the_o presence_n of_o his_o light_n just_a mar._n ib._n 305._o 2_o we_o must_v pray_v in_o a_o right_a order_n first_o for_o spiritual_a blessing_n and_o then_o for_o temporal_a first_o for_o pardon_n of_o sin_n then_o for_o remove_v of_o judgement_n 2_o sam._n 24.10_o first_o for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o its_o righteousness_n and_o then_o for_o other_o thing_n matth._n 6.33_o first_o for_o the_o light_n of_o god_n countenance_n psal_n 4.6_o then_o for_o corn_n and_o wine_n 3_o keep_v your_o heart_n always_o in_o a_o pray_a frame_n 1_o thes_n 5.17_o pray_v continual_o that_o be_v if_o any_o present_a occasion_n shall_v offer_v itself_o you_o may_v be_v fit_a for_o the_o duty_n hence_o have_v your_o heart_n so_o set_v upon_o the_o world_n that_o whensoever_o there_o shall_v be_v need_v you_o may_v call_v they_o off_o from_o the_o world_n 4_o come_v with_o shame_n and_o abasedness_n of_o spirit_n into_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n ephraim_n jer._n 34.19_o 20._o the_o prodigal_n luke_n 15.17_o 18._o the_o publican_n luke_n 18.13_o ezra_n 9.6_o ezra_n blush_v and_o be_v ashamed_a when_o he_o come_v before_o the_o lord_n in_o prayer_n nehemiah_n much_o confound_v for_o his_o own_o sin_n and_o the_o sin_n of_o his_o father_n house_n neh._n 1.6_o 7._o david_n often_o psa_n 51.2_o 3._o psal_n 130.1_o 2_o 3.143.2_o god_n be_v wont_a to_o fill_v such_o empty_a soul_n with_o comfort_n luke_n 1.48_o job_n 22.29_o the_o soul_n be_v then_o in_o the_o most_o pray_v frame_n when_o most_o abase_v then_o do_v the_o soul_n most_o go_v out_o of_o itself_o and_o magnify_v grace_n matth._n 6.9_o after_o this_o manner_n therefore_o pray_v you_o our_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n hallow_a be_v thy_o name_n after_o this_o manner_n therefore_o pray_v you_o as_o it_o be_v not_o enough_o for_o a_o gardener_n to_o weed_v out_o evil_a weed_n but_o also_o he_o plant_v good_a plant_n and_o flower_n or_o for_o a_o workman_n to_o pull_v down_o a_o ruinous_a house_n but_o he_o must_v also_o set_v up_o a_o firm_a house_n so_o christ_n do_v not_o only_o tax_v the_o fault_n that_o be_v commit_v in_o prayer_n but_o also_o prescribe_v a_o right_a manner_n of_o prayer_n q._n but_o see_v you_o have_v lay_v down_o a_o manner_n of_o prayer_n and_o christ_n set_v forth_o another_o and_o there_o be_v but_o one_o manner_n of_o call_v upon_o god_n aright_o how_o can_v this_o manner_n and_o the_o manner_n lay_v down_o be_v consistent_a together_o a._n in_o the_o manner_n of_o prayer_n already_o prescribe_v prayer_n have_v be_v handle_v as_o to_o the_o particular_a requisite_n and_o qualification_n thereof_o which_o christ_n do_v not_o here_o insist_v upon_o at_o all_o or_o if_o at_o all_o it_o be_v in_o very_a general_n which_o i_o have_v endeavour_v to_o digest_v into_o particular_n already_o lay_v down_o but_o here_o christ_n set_v forth_o the_o manner_n of_o prayer_n as_o to_o order_v and_o end_n 1_o to_o order_n first_o to_o ask_v those_o thing_n which_o concern_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n as_o in_o the_o three_o first_o petition_n and_o then_o the_o thing_n which_o concern_v our_o good_a in_o the_o three_o last_o 2_o to_o end_n there_o be_v two_o end_n of_o prayer_n 1_o that_o god_n may_v be_v honour_v of_o we_o 2_o that_o we_o may_v obtain_v of_o he_o the_o good_a thing_n needful_a for_o this_o life_n and_o the_o life_n to_o come_v q._n whether_o do_v christ_n use_v this_o prescription_n about_o the_o manner_n of_o prayer_n twice_o a._n it_o be_v likely_a forasmuch_o as_o matthew_n and_o luke_n set_v forth_o divers_a occasion_n that_o christ_n deliver_v it_o twice_o here_o it_o be_v set_v down_o to_o rectify_v prayer_n from_o the_o pharisee_n corruption_n there_o it_o be_v set_v down_o upon_o the_o request_n of_o a_o certain_a disciple_n who_o say_v lord_n teach_v we_o to_o pray_v as_o john_n teach_v his_o disciple_n luke_n 11.1_o 2._o 2_o q._n whether_o do_v christ_n prescribe_v this_o as_o a_o rule_n after_o which_o our_o prayer_n be_v to_o be_v square_v or_o do_v he_o prescribe_v it_o as_o a_o form_n that_o must_v be_v use_v and_o no_o other_o a._n christ_n prescribe_v it_o as_o a_o rule_n according_a to_o which_o our_o petition_n be_v to_o be_v direct_v not_o as_o a_o form_n to_o the_o continual_a use_n whereof_o we_o be_v oblige_v i_o will_v not_o take_v upon_o i_o to_o
condemn_v all_o form_n see_v we_o read_v of_o sundry_a in_o scripture_n as_o psal_n 102._o v._n 1_o etc._n etc._n esai_n 63.15_o to_o the_o end_n of_o cap._n 64._o ult_n numb_a 6.24_o yet_o to_o use_v a_o form_n do_v argue_v thou_o be_v a_o very_a babe_n who_o go_v by_o a_o form_n because_o they_o can_v go_v alone_o and_o to_o use_v a_o form_n when_o thou_o be_v able_a to_o power_n out_o thy_o own_o heart_n more_o and_o better_a than_o any_o form_n can_v teach_v thou_o be_v to_o to_o offer_v to_o the_o lord_n a_o corrupt_a thing_n when_o thou_o have_v a_o male_a in_o thy_o flock_n thou_o be_v a_o very_a babe_n till_o thou_o be_v able_a to_o express_v thy_o want_n in_o conceive_a prayer_n what_o man_n be_v there_o that_o be_v sensible_a of_o his_o want_n that_o can_v declare_v they_o to_o man_n and_o can_v thou_o not_o declare_v they_o to_o god_n christ_n have_v give_v we_o this_o breviary_n of_o prayer_n as_o a_o looking-glass_n to_o see_v our_o want_n himself_o never_o use_v it_o nor_o can_v he_o in_o truth_n say_v forgive_v we_o our_o trespass_n see_v himself_o have_v none_o we_o never_o read_v the_o apostle_n use_v this_o prayer_n but_o only_o frame_v their_o petition_n according_a to_o it_o act_n 1.24_o matth._n 26.39_o we_o ought_v then_o to_o look_v upon_o this_o as_o a_o pattern_n without_o which_o we_o may_v have_v wander_v in_o our_o request_n often_o ask_v thing_n hurtful_a for_o we_o we_o ought_v then_o hence_o to_o draw_v the_o matter_n of_o our_o prayer_n this_o form_n or_o pattern_n be_v usual_o divide_v into_o three_o p●rts_n 1_o a_o preface_n our_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n 2_o petition_n which_o be_v six_o or_o according_a to_o some_o of_o the_o ancient_n seven_o 3_o the_o conclusion_n for_o thou_o be_v the_o kingdom_n etc._n etc._n 1_o the_o preface_n our_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n we_o call_v he_o father_n 1_o to_o show_v that_o we_o be_v not_o to_o look_v upon_o he_o as_o a_o tyrant_n or_o a_o strange_a that_o know_v we_o not_o or_o as_o a_o hard_a master_n but_o as_o a_o father_n 2_o to_o embolden_v we_o to_o come_v unto_o he_o 3_o to_o show_v his_o readiness_n to_o do_v you_o good_a luke_n 11.13_o if_o evil_a father_n will_v do_v good_a to_o their_o child_n will_v not_o our_o father_n do_v good_a to_o his_o child_n 4_o to_o show_v that_o we_o believe_v our_o election_n and_o adoption_n 5_o assurance_n of_o his_o readiness_n and_o willingness_n to_o help_v we_o whereas_o former_o we_o dare_v not_o lift_v up_o our_o eye_n to_o heaven_n luke_n 15.18_o our_o 1_o this_o word_n our_a teach_v that_o however_o we_o believe_v for_o ourselves_o yet_o charity_n teach_v we_o to_o pray_v for_o other_o 2_o to_o denote_v unto_o we_o a_o communion_n of_o saint_n how_o that_o they_o be_v so_o join_v together_o as_o if_o the_o want_n of_o one_o be_v the_o want_n of_o all_o 1_o cor._n 12.26_o if_o one_o member_n suffer_v all_o the_o member_n suffer_v with_o it_o 3_o that_o we_o may_v not_o disdain_v the_o mean_a christian_n from_o be_v our_o brother_n in_o christ_n if_o god_n have_v adopt_v he_o for_o he_o ephes_n 4.5_o yet_o may_v a_o christian_a in_o private_a say_v my_o father_n matth_n 26.39.27.46_o 4_o to_o keep_v we_o from_o arrogate_a to_o ourselves_o above_o other_o remember_v we_o be_v of_o the_o company_n of_o son_n on_o earth_n some_o saint_n have_v more_o noble_a father_n than_o other_o but_o to_o the_o father_n in_o heaven_n all_o believer_n be_v alike_o relate_v 5_o to_o encourage_v the_o weak_a that_o they_o may_v believe_v that_o god_n be_v no_o less_o their_o father_n than_o the_o father_n of_o peter_n paul_n etc._n etc._n 6_o that_o we_o shall_v not_o only_o pray_v for_o our_o own_o necessity_n but_o also_o for_o the_o necessity_n of_o other_o james_z 5.16_o apply_v in_o private_a prayer_n that_o common_a fatherhood_n to_o ourselves_o and_o this_o father_n we_o call_v upon_o we_o may_v look_v upon_o some_o time_n personal_o ephes_n 3.14_o 1_o cor._n 8.6_o sometime_o essential_o for_o father_n son_n and_o spirit_n so_o christ_n be_v call_v the_o everlasting_a father_n isai_n 9.6_o 7_o to_o teach_v we_o mutual_a sympathy_n 1_o cor._n 12.26_o if_o one_o member_n suffer_v all_o the_o member_n suffer_v with_o it_o heb._n 13.3_o 8_o to_o teach_v we_o unity_n and_o agreement_n with_o our_o brethren_n as_o member_n of_o the_o same_o body_n hence_o before_o we_o bring_v our_o gift_n we_o be_v to_o agree_v with_o our_o brother_n matth._n 5.24_o which_o art_n in_o heaven_n 1_n to_o show_n that_o how_o ever_o earthly_a parent_n have_v a_o good_a will_n to_o help_v their_o child_n yet_o want_v power_n yet_o our_o father_n be_v in_o heaven_n and_o be_v the_o god_n of_o all_o might_n have_v power_n to_o do_v for_o we_o above_o all_o that_o we_o can_v ask_v or_o think_v ephes_n 3.20_o psalm_n 115.3_o 2_o to_o take_v away_o erroneous_a conception_n of_o god_n wherein_o carnal_a man_n be_v ready_a to_o think_v of_o he_o like_o earthly_a parent_n 3_o to_o denote_v unto_o we_o his_o special_a presence_n he_o have_v in_o heaven_n there_o his_o power_n wisdom_n goodness_n do_v most_o shine_v forth_o and_o from_o thence_o be_v manifest_v to_o we_o psalm_n 19.1_o the_o heaven_n declare_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n 4_o that_o when_o we_o come_v before_o he_o we_o shall_v come_v with_o reverence_n and_o lift_v up_o of_o heart_n lam._n 3.41_o let_v we_o lift_v up_o our_o heart_n with_o our_o hand_n to_o god_n in_o the_o heaven_n where_o god_n be_v not_o circumscriptive_o as_o the_o body_n of_o man_n bound_v by_o such_o a_o place_n nor_o definitive_o as_o the_o angel_n but_o repletive_o fill_v all_o place_n for_o the_o heaven_n of_o heaven_n be_v not_o able_a to_o contain_v he_o 1_o king_n 8.27_o 5_o to_o show_v to_o we_o that_o though_o god_n be_v every_o where_o psalm_n 139.7_o 8_o 9_o whither_o shall_v i_o flee_v from_o thy_o presence_n if_o i_o ascend_v up_o into_o heaven_n thou_o be_v there_o if_o i_o make_v my_o bed_n in_o hell_n behold_v thou_o be_v there_o if_o in_o the_o uttermost_a part_n of_o the_o sea_n thou_o be_v there_o amos_n 9.1_o 2_o 3._o yet_o he_o be_v say_v to_o dwell_v in_o the_o heaven_n psalm_n 2.4_o hear_v from_o heaven_n thy_o dwell_a place_n 1_o king_n 8.30_o there_o his_o majesty_n and_o glory_n most_o shine_v forth_o psalm_n 112.5.123.1_o yet_o do_v he_o dwell_v in_o humble_a and_o holy_a heart_n isai_n 57.15_o 1_o cor._n 3.16_o as_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n which_o be_v whole_o in_o the_o whole_a and_o in_o every_o part_n yet_o be_v say_v to_o be_v in_o the_o head_n or_o heart_n more_o than_o elsewhere_o because_o there_o more_o than_o elsewhere_o it_o exercise_v his_o power_n and_o effect_n so_o though_o god_n be_v essential_o every_o where_n and_o in_o all_o place_n whole_o yet_o he_o work_v not_o grace_n and_o gift_n equal_o in_o all_o part_n but_o he_o work_v in_o heaven_n more_o than_o in_o earth_n in_o the_o godly_a more_o than_o the_o wicked_a and_o in_o one_o of_o his_o child_n more_o than_o in_o another_o in_o the_o saint_n in_o heaven_n 〈◊〉_d than_o in_o the_o saint_n on_o earth_n and_o in_o the_o humane_a nature_n of_o christ_n more_o than_o in_o any_o creature_n hallow_a be_v thy_o name_n this_n be_v the_o first_o petition_n and_o christ_n his_o meaning_n be_v 1_o that_o god_n glory_n be_v every_o where_o magnify_v it_o be_v put_v in_o the_o first_o place_n because_o god_n glory_n must_v be_v prefer_v before_o all_o thing_n prov._n 16.4_o the_o lord_n have_v make_v all_o thing_n for_o himself_o thus_o must_v every_o one_o do_v that_o call_v god_n father_n so_o that_o if_o our_o credit_n or_o profit_v come_v in_o competition_n therewith_o we_o be_v willing_a to_o renounce_v not_o only_o they_o but_o every_o thing_n else_o for_o the_o lord_n 2_o that_o the_o name_n of_o god_n which_o be_v god_n himself_o be_v magnify_v the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v not_o so_o many_o letter_n but_o god_n himself_o holy_a and_o reverend_a be_v his_o name_n psalm_n 111.9_o it_o be_v the_o speech_n of_o the_o man_n of_o bethshemesh_n who_o be_v able_a to_o stand_v before_o this_o holy_a lord_n god_n 1_o sam._n 6.20_o god_n be_v glorious_a in_o holiness_n exod._n 15.11_o the_o trinity_n be_v say_v to_o be_v holy_a isai_n 6.3_o holy_a holy_a holy_a lord_n god_n of_o host_n the_o father_n be_v holy_a john_n 17.11_o the_o son_n holy_a luke_n 1.35_o act_n 4.27_o the_o spirit_n be_v holy_a ephes_n 4.30_o grieve_v not_o the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o god_n god_n be_v not_o only_o holy_a but_o holiness_n in_o the_o very_a abstract_n amos_n 4.2_o the_o lord_n have_v swear_v by_o his_o holiness_n that_o be_v by_o himself_o saint_n be_v holy_a
manasses_n beget_v amon_n who_o have_v a_o short_a reign_n and_o a_o wicked_a he_o reign_v two_o year_n 2_o king_n 21.20_o 21._o and_o trespass_v more_o and_o more_o without_o humiliation_n 2_o chron._n 33.23_o v._o 11._o and_o josias_n beget_v jechonias_n and_o his_o brethren_n above_o the_o time_n they_o be_v carry_v away_o to_o babylon_n josias_n beget_v jechonias_n this_o josias_n be_v say_v to_o walk_v in_o all_o the_o way_n of_o david_n and_o not_o turn_v aside_o 2_o king_n 23.2_o his_o heart_n be_v humble_v and_o tender_a at_o god_n threaten_n against_o jerusalem_n v._o 19_o he_o turn_v to_o god_n with_o all_o his_o heart_n soul_n and_o might_n 2_o king_n 24.25_o josias_n have_v four_o son_n johanan_n joakim_n zedekiah_n and_o sallum_n 1_o chron._n 3.15_o now_o none_o of_o his_o son_n be_v call_v jechonias_n hierom_n on_o the_o first_o of_o daniel_n say_v that_o porphiry_n object_v this_o place_n to_o the_o christian_n so_o do_v julian_n as_o hierom_n mention_n on_o matth._n 1._o some_o think_v the_o fault_n be_v in_o the_o library_n who_o be_v deceive_v with_o the_o likeness_n of_o the_o word_n jojakim_n who_o be_v josiah_n son_n and_o jojacin_n who_o be_v his_o grandchild_n raze_v out_o the_o former_a as_o superfluous_a not_o consider_v that_o they_o lose_v one_o of_o the_o two_o and_o forty_o generation_n hereby_o but_o this_o fault_n be_v not_o in_o all_o the_o copy_n for_o robert_n stephan_n out_o of_o ancient_a book_n restore_v the_o place_n thus_o josias_n beget_v jakim_n jakim_n beget_v jechonias_n and_o his_o brethren_n and_o the_o very_a matter_n itself_o speak_v forth_o the_o truth_n of_o stephan_n copy_n so_o that_o the_o read_n be_v to_o be_v restore_v josias_n beget_v jakim_n and_o his_o brethren_n and_o jakim_n beget_v jechonias_n which_o lineal_a descent_n appear_v jer._n 22.18_o where_o jehojakim_n be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o josiah_n and_o coniah_n the_o son_n of_o jehojakim_n v._o 24._o the_o word_n jah_n be_v take_v from_o his_o name_n as_o some_o have_v think_v in_o contempt_n about_o the_o time_n they_o be_v carry_v to_o babylon_n there_o be_v two_o carrying_n away_o into_o captivity_n in_o the_o first_o whereof_o jehojakim_n be_v carry_v away_o captive_a 2_o king_n 24_o 12._o this_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o transmigration_n when_o jehojachim_n yield_v himself_o to_o the_o king_n of_o babylon_n free_o whether_o upon_o the_o persuasion_n of_o jeremy_n or_o otherwise_o the_o second_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o captivity_n when_o zedekiah_n rebel_v against_o the_o king_n of_o babylon_n so_o that_o jerusalem_n be_v take_v by_o force_n jer._n 39.7_o three_o several_a time_n the_o people_n be_v carry_v away_o in_o the_o captivity_n at_o that_o time_n see_v jer._n 52.27_o 28_o 29_o 30._o v._o 12._o and_o after_o they_o be_v bring_v to_o babylon_n jechonias_n beget_v salathiel_n and_o salathiel_n beget_v zerubbabel_n jechonias_n beget_v salathiel_n which_o appear_v hag._n 1.1_o 14._o obj._n but_o jechoniah_n be_v write_v childless_a jer._n 22.10_o answ_n he_o be_v not_o say_v to_o be_v childless_a because_o he_o have_v no_o child_n for_o it_o appear_v he_o have_v v._o 28._o but_o childless_a in_o respect_n of_o the_o kingdom_n because_o none_o of_o his_o posterity_n be_v to_o sit_v upon_o the_o throne_n of_o david_n v._o 30._o beside_o it_o appear_v jeconiah_n have_v eight_o son_n whereof_o salathiel_n be_v one_o 1_o chron._n 3.17_o 18._o salathiel_n beget_v zerubbabel_n this_o zerubbabel_n bring_v the_o jew_n out_o of_o babylon_n into_o judea_n zach._n 4.6_o 9_o 10._o a_o type_n of_o christ_n who_o bring_v his_o people_n out_o of_o mystical_a babylon_n to_o zion_n v._o 13._o moreover_o zerubbabel_n beget_v abiud_v abiud_v beget_v eliakim_n eliakim_n beget_v azor._n in_o this_o last_o tesseradecas_n or_o fourteen_o generation_n be_v reckon_v up_o not_o king_n but_o chief_a ruler_n they_o that_o follow_v salathiel_n in_o luke_n be_v suppose_v to_o have_v have_v two_o name_n according_a to_o philo_n till_o you_o come_v to_o simeon_n so_o that_o neri_n be_v the_o same_o with_o jechonias_n and_o melchi_n with_o joakim_n v._o 14_o 15._o and_o azor_n beget_v sadoc_n and_o sadoc_n beget_v achim_n and_o achim_n beget_v eliud_fw-la and_o eliud_fw-la beget_v eleazar_n and_o eleazar_n beget_v matthan_n and_o matthan_n beget_v jacob._n there_o be_v nothing_o speak_v of_o these_o nine_o generation_n in_o scripture_n but_o it_o be_v like_o the_o evangelist_n take_v they_o out_o of_o the_o table_n of_o the_o family_n preserve_v in_o captivity_n or_o rather_o that_o the_o spirit_n do_v inspire_v the_o evangelist_n herein_o v._o 16._o and_o jacob_n beget_v joseph_n the_o husband_n of_o mary_n of_o who_o be_v bear_v jesus_n which_o be_v call_v christ_n jacob_n beget_v joseph_n the_o husband_n of_o mary_n the_o pagan_n and_o jew_n have_v vent_v sundry_a question_n against_o this_o as_o celsus_n in_o origen_n l._n 2._o and_o julian_n and_o other_o mention_v in_o maldonate_fw-it they_o reason_n either_o jesus_n be_v natural_o beget_v of_o joseph_n and_o so_o can_v not_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n natural_o or_o else_o the_o genealogy_n of_o joseph_n prove_v nothing_o concern_v the_o generation_n of_o christ_n that_o he_o be_v of_o the_o lineage_n of_o david_n answ_n though_o joseph_n be_v the_o suppose_a father_n of_o christ_n yet_o his_o genealogy_n prove_v that_o jesus_n be_v the_o son_n of_o david_n because_o mary_v his_o mother_n be_v of_o the_o tribe_n of_o judah_n and_o family_n of_o david_n which_o appear_v because_o joseph_n be_v a_o just_a man_n and_o fear_v god_n therefore_o he_o marry_v a_o wife_n of_o the_o same_o tribe_n and_o she_o also_o fear_v god_n and_o so_o the_o bond_n of_o a_o command_n of_o god_n lay_v upon_o both_o their_o conscience_n which_o be_v mention_v numb_a 36.6_o 7_o 8._o let_v they_o marry_v to_o who_o they_o think_v best_a only_o to_o the_o tribe_n of_o the_o family_n of_o their_o father_n shall_v they_o marry_v so_o shall_v not_o the_o inheritance_n of_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n remove_v from_o tribe_n to_o tribe_n and_o every_o daughter_n that_o possess_v a_o inheritance_n shall_v be_v wife_n unto_o one_o of_o the_o family_n of_o her_o father_n that_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n may_v every_o one_o enjoy_v the_o inheritance_n of_o his_o father_n 2_o before_o joseph_n and_o mary_n come_v together_o mary_n be_v with_o child_n of_o jesus_n matth._n 1.18_o she_o remain_v still_o a_o virgin_n vers_fw-la 23._o now_o vers_fw-la 1._o jesus_n be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o david_n the_o son_n of_o abraham_n matth._n 1.1_o therefore_o christ_n must_v needs_o be_v the_o son_n of_o david_n by_o the_o mother_n therefore_o marry_o his_o mother_n be_v the_o daughter_n of_o david_n which_o further_o appear_v luk_n 1.32_o he_o shall_v be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o the_o high_a and_o the_o lord_n god_n shall_v give_v unto_o he_o the_o throne_n of_o his_o father_n david_n quest_n but_o why_o do_v matthew_n reckon_v up_o the_o genealogy_n of_o joseph_n rather_o than_o mary_n answ_n it_o be_v a_o custom_n among_o the_o jew_n that_o the_o genealogy_n of_o the_o man_n not_o of_o the_o woman_n shall_v be_v reckon_v up_o 2_o he_o can_v not_o so_o well_o have_v set_v down_o the_o genealogy_n of_o mary_n if_o he_o have_v not_o also_o set_v down_o joseph_n her_o husband_n who_o be_v of_o the_o tribe_n of_o judah_n which_o prove_v she_o be_v a_o godly_a woman_n to_o be_v also_o of_o the_o same_o tribe_n because_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o marry_v otherwise_o 3_o it_o appear_v that_o mary_n as_o well_o as_o joseph_n be_v of_o the_o same_o tribe_n and_o lineage_n for_o though_o the_o jewish_a woman_n may_v marry_v to_o one_o of_o another_o tribe_n yet_o if_o in_o their_o father_n house_n there_o be_v no_o heir_n male_a and_o so_o the_o female_n happen_v to_o succeed_v in_o the_o inheritance_n to_o keep_v the_o inheritance_n in_o the_o same_o tribe_n and_o that_o it_o may_v not_o pass_v to_o another_o the_o inherit_v woman_n be_v bind_v to_o marry_v one_o of_o she_o own_o tribe_n numb_a 27.7_o 4_o because_o christ_n be_v bear_v after_o the_o espouse_v of_o joseph_n and_o mary_n therefore_o christ_n may_v be_v ascribe_v to_o joseph_n and_o mary_n he_o have_v as_o it_o be_v power_n of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o virgin_n and_o therefore_o of_o the_o fruit_n of_o her_o body_n beside_o the_o off_o spring_v that_o be_v bear_v in_o wedlock_n whensoever_o or_o howsoever_o beget_v be_v ascribe_v by_o all_o civil_a law_n unto_o the_o husband_n and_o wife_n so_o marry_v therefore_o as_o christ_n be_v true_o the_o son_n of_o mary_n though_o he_o be_v not_o natural_o but_o supernatural_o bear_v of_o she_o so_o be_v he_o also_o the_o son_n of_o joseph_n because_o god_n attribute_n this_o fruit_n unto_o he_o as_o a_o reward_n
joseph_n know_v she_o so_o to_o be_v but_o joseph_n be_v slow_a in_o believe_v she_o till_o the_o angel_n appear_v to_o he_o qu._n be_v there_o no_o use_n to_o be_v make_v of_o dream_n now_o answ_n 1_o there_o be_v d_o vers_n sort_n of_o dream_n as_o 1_o natural_a so_o the_o thing_n which_o the_o sense_n on_o the_o day_n time_n carry_v over_o to_o the_o understanding_n be_v more_o deep_o settle_v there_o be_v send_v back_o again_o to_o the_o fancy_n or_o common_a sense_n and_o this_o not_o only_o in_o man_n but_o in_o bruit_n a_o dream_n come_v through_o multitude_n of_o business_n eccles_n 5.3_o 2_o moral_a which_o arise_v from_o wise_a discourse_n and_o read_v book_n 3_o diabolical_a which_o come_v from_o satan_n such_o be_v filthy_a dream_n of_o which_o judas_n 8_o against_o these_o the_o ancient_a church_n pray_v h●stemque_fw-la nostrum_fw-la comprime_fw-la ne_fw-la polluantur_fw-la corpora_fw-la bridle_v our_o enemy_n that_o our_o body_n be_v not_o defile_v 4_o divine_a so_o god_n appear_v to_o solomon_n 2_o chron._n 7.12_o 13._o sometime_o god_n have_v appear_v thus_o twice_o job_n 33.14_o 15._o twice_o he_o appear_v thus_o to_o paul_n act_v 16.9.18.9_o and_o so_o he_o appear_v to_o pilate_n wife_n matth._n 27.19_o 2_o there_o may_v be_v use_v make_v of_o dream_n as_o the_o urine_n or_o pulse_n be_v sign_n of_o sickness_n or_o health_n so_o dream_n may_v show_v we_o what_o our_o natural_a complexion_n be_v and_o what_o humour_n be_v predominant_a where_o yellow_a choler_n abound_v there_o we_o dream_v of_o fire_n strife_n and_o fight_n where_o black_a choler_n abound_v man_n dream_v of_o smoke_n darkness_n funeral_n where_o phlegm_n abound_v man_n dream_v of_o shower_n of_o rain_n well_n of_o water_n river_n and_o such_o thing_n as_o have_v a_o cold_a moisture_n where_o blood_n abound_v man_n dream_v of_o thing_n beautiful_a clear_a and_o sweet_a martyr_n out_o of_o galen_n tell_v of_o a_o man_n that_o dream_v he_o have_v a_o thigh_n of_o stone_n and_o in_o a_o few_o day_n after_o he_o fall_v into_o a_o palsy_n and_o of_o another_o that_o dream_v he_o fall_v into_o a_o cistern_n of_o blood_n which_o signify_v abundance_n of_o blood_n and_o that_o he_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o blood_n let_v sometime_o in_o sleep_n man_n seem_v to_o have_v such_o a_o burden_n they_o can_v bear_v it_o sometime_o to_o be_v so_o light_a that_o they_o do_v as_o it_o be_v fly_v which_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o excess_n and_o defect_n of_o humour_n to_o conclude_v dream_n of_o preferment_n do_v too_o much_o point_n out_o ambition_n in_o we_o unclean_a dream_n do_v too_o much_o point_n out_o wander_a imagination_n on_o the_o day_n time_n or_o excess_n of_o gluttony_n at_o night_n terrible_a dream_n may_v put_v we_o in_o mind_n what_o we_o may_v look_v for_o if_o god_n be_v not_o more_o merciful_a favourable_a and_o successful_a dream_n may_v put_v we_o in_o mind_n what_o we_o may_v expect_v if_o our_o sin_n do_v not_o stand_v in_o the_o way_n but_o for_o divine_a dream_n when_o they_o be_v it_o be_v like_o the_o understanding_n on_o the_o day_n time_n have_v be_v well_o employ_v in_o divine_a thing_n and_o the_o frequenter_a they_o be_v they_o denote_v perhaps_o a_o better_a frame_n of_o spirit_n aspire_v after_o divine_a thing_n yet_o as_o we_o be_v not_o to_o expect_v direction_n from_o they_o god_n have_v speak_v clear_o by_o his_o son_n so_o be_v we_o not_o altogether_o to_o slight_v they_o see_v god_n have_v former_o manifest_v himself_o by_o they_o beside_o god_n have_v not_o lose_v any_o of_o his_o prerogative_n but_o that_o he_o can_v manifest_v himself_o by_o they_o yet_o the_o three_o part_n be_v the_o ground_n of_o joseph_n consolation_n which_o be_v for_o that_o which_o be_v conceive_v in_o she_o be_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n because_o fear_n will_v not_o be_v cast_v out_o by_o word_n but_o by_o reason_n the_o angel_n give_v a_o reason_n why_o joseph_n shall_v not_o fear_v viz._n because_o that_o which_o joseph_n fear_v be_v a_o act_n of_o adultery_n be_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o therefore_o he_o have_v cause_n rather_o to_o rejoice_v then_o to_o grieve_v because_o of_o his_o spouse_n mary_n the_o long_a lookt-for_a messiah_n be_v now_o to_o be_v bear_v such_o a_o message_n joseph_n have_v at_o another_o time_n when_o he_o be_v in_o his_o fear_n luk._n 2.10_o the_o angel_n say_v fear_v not_o for_o behold_v i_o bring_v you_o good_a tiding_n of_o great_a joy_n for_o unto_o you_o be_v bear_v in_o the_o city_n of_o david_n a_o saviour_n which_o be_v christ_n the_o lord_n and_o therefore_o thou_o joseph_n may_v take_v she_o from_o her_o friend_n or_o kindred_n to_o be_v thy_o wife_n and_o thou_o may_v with_o a_o quiet_a conscience_n live_v with_o she_o moreover_o the_o angel_n call_v he_o the_o son_n of_o david_n to_o raise_v up_o joseph_n heart_n to_o consider_v that_o he_o as_o well_o as_o his_o wife_n be_v of_o that_o family_n to_o descend_v from_o who_o the_o messiah_n be_v promise_v to_o all_o the_o believer_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o so_o he_o the_o say_a joseph_n shall_v have_v the_o honour_n to_o be_v the_o civil_a father_n of_o this_o messiah_n as_o the_o virgin_n his_o wife_n have_v the_o honour_n to_o be_v his_o natural_a mother_n and_o therefore_o vers_fw-la 16._o it_o be_v say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d not_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o which_o in_o the_o feminine_a gender_n christ_n be_v beget_v not_o of_o who_o to_o prove_v that_o joseph_n be_v only_o a_o civil_a father_n provide_v to_o take_v care_n of_o the_o virgin_n and_o the_o messiah_n she_o go_v with_o v._o 21._o and_o she_o shall_v bring_v forth_o a_o son_n and_o thou_o shall_v call_v his_o name_n jesus_n for_o he_o shall_v save_v his_o people_n from_o their_o sin_n here_o be_v a_o second_o ground_n to_o quiet_a joseph_n heart_n take_v from_o the_o quality_n or_o excellency_n of_o this_o son_n who_o the_o virgin_n shall_v bring_v forth_o he_o shall_v be_v a_o saviour_n to_o save_v his_o people_n bring_v forth_o a_o son_n not_o as_o the_o valentinian_o who_o teach_v that_o christ_n bring_v a_o heavenly_a body_n from_o heaven_n and_o pass_v through_o the_o virgin_n as_o a_o channel_n but_o as_o the_o virgin_n true_o conceive_v christ_n so_o she_o bring_v he_o forth_o according_a to_o esa_n 7.14_o behold_v a_o virgin_n shall_v conceive_v and_o shall_v bring_v forth_o a_o son_n and_o therefore_o thy_o spouse_n be_v not_o a_o adulteress_n but_o a_o most_o pure_a virgin_n this_o the_o angel_n gabriel_n tell_v the_o virgin_n mary_n luk._n 1.31_o that_o she_o shall_v bring_v forth_o a_o son_n and_o call_v his_o name_n jesus_n and_o here_o the_o angel_n tell_v the_o same_o in_o effect_n to_o joseph_n and_o thou_o shall_v call_v his_o name_n jesus_n father_n usual_o give_v name_n to_o their_o child_n jacob_n call_v his_o son_n benjamin_n though_o his_o mother_n call_v he_o benoni_n gen._n 35.18_o zacharias_n name_v his_o son_n john_n luk._n 1.63_o yet_o sometime_o the_o mother_n as_o hanna_n call_v her_o son_n samuel_n 1_o sam._n 1.20_o his_o name_n jesus_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d from_o his_o save_n christ_n be_v the_o name_n of_o his_o office_n jesus_n of_o his_o nature_n and_o person_n the_o name_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v jehoscua_n ascribe_v unto_o joshua_n the_o captain_n and_o to_o joshua_n the_o priest_n in_o the_o type_n but_o to_o christ_n in_o the_o truth_n because_o he_o be_v the_o alone_a saviour_n of_o his_o people_n act_v 4.12_o heb._n 7.25_o he_o be_v able_a to_o save_v they_o that_o come_v unto_o god_n by_o he_o for_o though_o baptism_n be_v say_v to_o save_v 1_o peter_z 3.21_o and_o preacher_n 1_o tim._n 4.16_o baptism_n do_v save_v by_o way_n of_o signification_n preacher_n as_o instrument_n by_o way_n of_o publication_n for_o he_o shall_v save_v his_o people_n from_o their_o sin_n three_o thing_n be_v considerable_a 1._o who_o christ_n save_v resp_n all_o believer_n because_o by_o faith_n alone_o this_o salvation_n be_v receive_v all_o his_o body_n for_o he_o be_v call_v the_o saviour_n of_o the_o body_n ephes_n 5.23_o 2._o from_o what_o christ_n save_v resp_n from_o their_o sin_n which_o will_v bring_v they_o to_o hell_n as_o a_o physician_n bring_v a_o potion_n to_o his_o patient_n not_o to_o kill_v death_n but_o to_o kill_v the_o disease_n that_o will_v bring_v the_o patient_n unto_o death_n so_o christ_n come_v not_o to_o quench_v the_o flame_n of_o hell_n but_o to_o save_v his_o people_n from_o their_o sin_n which_o will_v bring_v they_o to_o hell_n now_o jesus_n save_v we_o 1._o from_o the_o power_n of_o sin_n rom._n 6.14_o sin_n shall_v not_o have_v dominion_n over_o you_o for_o you_o be_v not_o under_o the_o law_n but_o under_o
infinite_a time_n or_o perpetuity_n psalm_n 110.2_o gen._n 28.15_o psalm_n 123.2_o 1_o sam._n 15.35_o 2_o sam._n 6.23_o gen._n 8.8_o job_n 27.5_o isai_n 22.14_o first-born_a the_o first-born_a excel_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o brethren_n 1._o in_o power_n and_o therefore_o when_o the_o father_n die_v it_o be_v suppose_v the_o elder_a son_n rule_v in_o the_o family_n before_o government_n of_o magistracy_n be_v set_v up_o so_o christ_n be_v first-born_a col._n 1.15_o rom._n 8_o 29._o 2._o the_o first-born_a have_v a_o double_a inheritance_n deut._n 21.15_o 16_o 17._o or_o a_o double_a portion_n in_o the_o inheritance_n so_o christ_n excel_v 1._o in_o his_o divine_a nature_n be_v beget_v of_o the_o father_n from_o everlasting_a mich._n 5.2_o 2._o in_o his_o humane_a nature_n be_v conceive_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o bear_v of_o a_o virgin_n all_o saint_n be_v call_v first-born_a who_o name_n be_v write_v in_o heaven_n heb._n 12.23_o but_o this_o will_v be_v when_o they_o come_v to_o heaven_n for_o than_o they_o will_v have_v lordship_n enough_o and_o double_a inheritance_n and_o call_v his_o name_n jesus_n we_o must_v refer_v this_o to_o joseph_n who_o according_a to_o the_o angel_n command_v call_v his_o name_n jesus_n which_o name_n be_v give_v to_o he_o the_o day_n that_o he_o be_v circumcise_v luke_n 2.22_o and_o while_o the_o eight_o day_n be_v accomplish_v for_o the_o circumcise_n of_o the_o child_n they_o call_v his_o name_n jesus_n chap._n ii_o in_o this_o chapter_n there_o be_v three_o part_n 1._o the_o history_n of_o the_o wise_a man_n and_o of_o herod_n from_o v._o 10._o to_o v._o 12._o 2._o the_o flight_n of_o joseph_n into_o egypt_n with_o the_o virgin_n mary_n and_o her_o child_n jesus_n be_v thereunto_o warn_v by_o god_n v._o 13_o 14_o 15._o 3._o the_o bloody_a cruelty_n of_o herod_n in_o slay_v the_o infant_n of_o bethlehem_n v._o 16_o 17_o 18._o 4._o the_o death_n of_o herod_n with_o the_o return_n of_o joseph_n mary_n and_o the_o child_n jesus_n out_o of_o egypt_n into_o nazareth_n a_o city_n of_o galilee_n v._o 19_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o chapter_n in_o this_o history_n of_o the_o wiseman_n we_o have_v 1._o the_o inquisition_n of_o the_o wiseman_n v._o 1_o 2._o where_o be_v he_o that_o be_v bear_v king_n of_o the_o jew_n v._o 2._o 2._o the_o ground_n of_o their_o inquiry_n for_o we_o have_v see_v his_o star_n in_o the_o east_n v._o 2._o 3._o the_o effect_n of_o this_o inquiry_n which_o be_v three_o 1._o herod_n be_v trouble_v and_o all_o jerusalem_n with_o he_o v._o 3._o 2._o herod_n gather_v all_o the_o chief_a priest_n and_o scribe_n to_o inquire_v where_o christ_n shall_v be_v bear_v which_o he_o find_v to_o be_v in_o bethlem_n v._o 4_o 5_o 6._o 3._o herod_n dismission_n of_o the_o wiseman_n with_o a_o pretence_n to_o worship_v that_o new_a king_n as_o soon_o as_o he_o know_v where_o he_o be_v five_o 7_o 8._o 4._o the_o satisfaction_n these_o wiseman_n have_v to_o their_o question_n amplify_v 1._o from_o the_o sign_n which_o be_v the_o star_n they_o see_v in_o the_o east_n go_v before_o they_o till_o it_o come_v and_o stand_v over_o the_o place_n where_o the_o young_a child_n be_v 2._o from_o the_o thing_n signify_v they_o come_v into_o the_o house_n and_o see_v the_o young_a child_n with_o mary_n his_o mother_n 5._o their_o gratulation_n or_o thankfulness_n for_o this_o so_o great_a mercy_n see_v in_o four_o particular_n 1._o in_o their_o great_a exultation_n they_o rejoice_v with_o exceed_a joy_n v._o 10._o 2._o in_o their_o devotion_n they_o worship_v he_o v._o 11._o 3._o in_o their_o liberal_a contribution_n in_o that_o they_o open_v their_o treasure_n and_o present_v unto_o he_o gift_n gold_z frankincense_n and_o myrrh_n v._o 11._o 4._o in_o their_o careful_a preservation_n of_o he_o who_o they_o find_v they_o will_v not_o return_v to_o carry_v word_n to_o herod_n as_o judge_v he_o to_o pretend_v hypocritical_o but_o return_v to_o their_o own_o country_n another_o way_n v._o 12._o v._o 1._o now_o when_o jesus_n be_v bear_v in_o bethlem_n of_o judea_n in_o the_o day_n of_o herod_n the_o king_n behold_v there_o come_v wise_a man_n from_o the_o east_n to_o jerusalem_n v._o 1_o now_o when_o jesus_n be_v bear_v in_o bethlem_n of_o judea_n the_o inquiry_n of_o the_o wise_a man_n be_v set_v down_o first_o from_o the_o place_n where_o christ_n be_v bear_v which_o be_v bethlem_n judah_n there_o be_v two_o bethlem_n one_o in_o the_o tribe_n of_o zebulon_n jos_n 19.15_o another_o in_o the_o tribe_n of_o judah_n call_v bethlem_n ephrata_n micah_n 5.2_o in_o this_o be_v christ_n bear_v 1_o because_o the_o prophet_n micah_n have_v foretold_v it_o 2_o because_o the_o place_n itself_o may_v point_v out_o unto_o they_o the_o judge_n of_o israel_n or_o the_o messiah_n 3_o david_n himself_o be_v bear_v there_o 1_o sam._n 17.12_o therefore_o it_o be_v fit_a that_o the_o flower_n of_o the_o house_n of_o jesse_n shall_v ascend_v and_o grow_v where_o the_o root_n be_v in_o the_o day_n of_o herod_n the_o king_n 2_o the_o wise_a man_n inquisition_n be_v set_v down_o from_o the_o time_n viz._n in_o the_o day_n of_o herod_n the_o king_n that_o be_v in_o the_o time_n or_o reign_n of_o herod_n ascalonite_n it_o be_v a_o time_n of_o great_a affliction_n when_o even_o little_a child_n suffer_v enough_o to_o make_v rachel_n mourn_v as_o she_o lie_v in_o her_o grave_n jer._n 31.15_o as_o the_o prophecy_n of_o he_o come_v when_o the_o church_n be_v in_o great_a distress_n as_o balaam_n prophesy_v when_o in_o the_o wilderness_n numb_a 24.17_o esaias_n prophesy_v when_o they_o be_v ready_a to_o be_v overrun_v with_o two_o king_n esa_n 7.14_o daniel_n prophesy_v when_o israel_n be_v in_o captivity_n dan._n 9.14_o 15_o so_o himself_o come_v when_o the_o church_n be_v in_o great_a distress_n herod_n the_o king_n who_o now_o be_v old_a he_o be_v a_o gentile_a and_o a_o stranger_n who_o be_v now_o king_n it_o appear_v that_o shiloh_n be_v come_v because_o the_o sceptre_n be_v depart_v from_o judah_n of_o he_o josephus_n speak_v l._n 14._o cap._n 18._o herod_n be_v a_o edomite_n betwixt_o who_o and_o israel_n be_v still_o enmity_n behold_v come_v wiseman_n from_o the_o east_n 3_o from_o the_o place_n they_o come_v from_o the_o east_n about_o this_o two_o question_n 1_o who_o they_o be_v resp_n wiseman_n this_o be_v none_o of_o the_o least_o of_o their_o wisdom_n that_o they_o come_v to_o christ_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o word_n in_o greek_a have_v be_v take_v sometime_o for_o magician_n act_n 8.9_o act_n 13.6_o but_o it_o be_v a_o persian_a word_n and_o signify_v as_o pareus_n observe_v a_o wise_a man_n and_o so_o maldonate_fw-it so_o that_o as_o the_o philosopher_n be_v famous_a wise_a man_n among_o the_o greek_n and_o brahmin_n among_o the_o indian_n and_o druid_n among_o the_o french_a so_o be_v the_o magi_n or_o the_o wiseman_n mention_v here_o among_o the_o persian_n sundry_a of_o the_o ancient_n have_v think_v these_o wise_a man_n to_o be_v king_n but_o the_o scripture_n be_v silent_a herein_o for_o the_o number_n of_o they_o whether_o 3._o or_o more_o the_o scripture_n be_v silent_a but_o they_o be_v three_o at_o least_o because_o the_o scripture_n speak_v not_o in_o the_o dual_a but_o plural_a number_n 2_o whence_o they_o come_v from_o the_o east_n probably_n from_o persia_n in_o the_o east_n because_o both_o the_o word_n magoi_fw-fr be_v a_o persian_a word_n and_o because_o they_o be_v say_v to_o come_v from_o the_o east_n and_o because_o it_o be_v the_o law_n of_o the_o persian_n to_o worship_v their_o king_n and_o not_o to_o go_v unto_o they_o without_o a_o gift_n other_o think_v they_o come_v out_o of_o arabia_n esa_n 60.6_o all_o they_o of_o sheba_n shall_v come_v they_o shall_v bring_v gold_n and_o incense_v also_o psal_n 71.10_o the_o king_n of_o sheba_n and_o seba_n shall_v bring_v gift_n beside_o arabia_n be_v near_o to_o judaea_n than_o chaldea_n or_o persia_n beside_o arabia_n abound_v with_o gold_n frankincense_n and_o myrrh_n so_o cor._n lapide_fw-la come_v to_o jerusalem_n these_o wise_a man_n come_v a_o long_a journey_n and_o a_o dangerous_a through_o arabia_n through_o the_o black_a tent_n of_o kedar_n famous_a for_o robbery_n psal_n 120.5_o at_o the_o worst_a season_n of_o the_o year_n these_o will_v rise_v up_o in_o judgement_n against_o many_o of_o we_o who_o coldness_n of_o weather_n distance_n of_o place_n intention_n of_o business_n hinder_v these_o wise_a man_n come_v to_o jerusalem_n they_o think_v the_o king_n will_v be_v bear_v in_o the_o royal_a city_n and_o therefore_o they_o seek_v he_o there_o sometime_o stranger_n seek_v after_o christ_n when_o home-dweller_n look_v not_o after_o he_o luke_n 4.25_o 26_o 27._o now_o if_o you_o ask_v when_o
without_o which_o they_o can_v not_o be_v christ_n disciple_n luk._n 14.26_o nor_o yet_o john_n disciple_n for_o john_n baptism_n and_o christ_n being_n one_o and_o the_o same_o specifical_a baptism_n as_o confession_n go_v before_o john_n baptism_n so_o must_v it_o go_v before_o christ_n baptism_n and_o as_o make_v disciple_n which_o be_v to_o teach_v to_o conversion_n believe_v and_o self-denial_n go_v before_o christ_n baptism_n so_o must_v it_o go_v before_o john_n baptism_n and_o so_o the_o eunuch_n before_o philip_n will_v baptize_v he_o make_v profession_n of_o his_o faith_n act._n 8.37_o so_o heb._n 10.22_o 23._o our_o body_n wash_v in_o pure_a water_n let_v we_o hold_v fast_o the_o profession_n of_o our_o faith_n without_o waver_v that_o be_v that_o profession_n we_o make_v at_o our_o baptism_n so_o that_o baptism_n be_v as_o a_o hand-writing_n pass_v betwixt_o god_n and_o we_o we_o confess_v our_o sin_n and_o profess_v our_o faith_n and_o he_o sign_n over_o and_o confirm_v unto_o we_o the_o pardon_n of_o our_o sin_n according_a to_o 1_o joh._n 1.9_o and_o therefore_o it_o follow_v that_o no_o wicked_a person_n that_o never_o come_v to_o the_o sight_n of_o their_o sin_n nor_o to_o humiliation_n for_o they_o be_v to_o be_v admit_v to_o baptism_n nor_o yet_o infant_n for_o their_o receive_n destroy_v the_o qualification_n precede_v baptism_n which_o be_v confession_n for_o they_o be_v not_o first_o baptize_v and_o then_o confess_v but_o first_o they_o confess_v and_o then_o they_o be_v baptize_v v._o 7._o but_o when_o he_o see_v many_o of_o the_o pharisee_n and_o of_o the_o sadducee_n come_v to_o his_o baptism_n he_o say_v unto_o they_o o_o generation_n of_o viper_n who_o have_v warn_v you_o to_o flee_v from_o the_o wrath_n to_o come_v we_o have_v here_o john_n ministry_n set_v down_o from_o the_o reprehension_n he_o give_v to_o the_o pharisee_n and_o sadducee_n from_o v._o 7._o to_o v._o 13._o here_o may_v be_v a_o question_n why_o john_n threaten_v these_o pharisee_n so_o severe_o that_o come_v to_o his_o baptism_n to_o know_v this_o consider_v 1_o who_o the_o pharisee_n and_o sadducee_n be_v 1_o the_o pharisee_n do_v not_o only_o observe_v the_o levitical_a rite_n in_o a_o more_o exquisite_a way_n than_o other_o but_o have_v many_o other_o outward_a tradition_n as_o wash_n and_o corban_n etc._n etc._n wherein_o they_o place_v righteousness_n and_o the_o desert_n of_o eternal_a life_n to_o get_v a_o opinion_n of_o holiness_n they_o separate_v themselves_o in_o apparel_n and_o diet_n from_o other_o man_n but_o not_o hence_o be_v they_o call_v pharisees_n but_o because_o they_o not_o content_a with_o the_o letter_n only_o will_v search_v out_o the_o hide_a sense_n hence_o be_v they_o call_v pherussim_n that_o be_v interpreter_n these_o pharisee_n spring_v up_o about_o one_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o year_n before_o christ_n they_o attribute_v some_o thing_n to_o destiny_n but_o not_o all_o thing_n but_o they_o say_v some_o thing_n be_v in_o a_o man_n own_o power_n to_o do_v or_o not_o to_o do_v joseph_n l._n 13._o ant._n c._n 9_o these_o confess_v the_o resurrection_n acknowledge_v angel_n and_o spirit_n act_n 23.8_o and_o to_o gain_v opinion_n they_o make_v broad_a their_o philactery_n the_o piece_n of_o parchment_n which_o they_o wear_v on_o their_o breast_n wherein_o the_o commandment_n be_v write_v matth._n 23.5_o these_o have_v the_o office_n and_o authority_n of_o public_a teach_v confirm_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o christ_n the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n sit_v in_o moses_n chair_n whatsoever_o they_o bid_v you_o observe_v that_o observe_v and_o do_v the_o scribe_n be_v put_v before_o they_o as_o be_v of_o a_o more_o ancient_a institution_n perhaps_o divine_a 2_o the_o sadducee_n these_o deny_v a_o providence_n of_o god_n in_o the_o world_n govern_v humane_a thing_n they_o deny_v the_o immortality_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n they_o think_v there_o be_v neither_o angel_n nor_o devil_n act_v 23.8_o they_o be_v indeed_o plain_a atheist_n who_o think_v religion_n be_v invent_v to_o keep_v man_n in_o awe_n for_o outward_a and_o politic_a end_n they_o observe_v some_o outward_a legal_a rite_n these_o attribute_v nothing_o to_o destiny_n but_o all_o to_o the_o will_n of_o man_n and_o that_o we_o be_v author_n as_o well_o of_o our_o own_o happiness_n as_o of_o our_o misfortune_n joseph_n lib._n 13._o antiq._n cap._n 9_o the_o pharisee_n follow_v the_o faith_n of_o moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n oppose_v these_o the_o people_n follow_v the_o pharisee_n the_o great_a man_n follow_v the_o sadducee_n the_o sadducee_n deny_v all_o the_o old_a testament_n save_o the_o five_o book_n of_o moses_n tertul_n the_o praescrip_n and_o therefore_o christ_n matth._n 22.31_o 32._o prove_v the_o resurrection_n out_o of_o they_o they_o be_v call_v sadducee_n that_o be_v righteous_a because_o they_o do_v arrogate_v the_o name_n of_o righteousness_n to_o themselves_o or_o rather_o of_o sadoc_n their_o author_n as_o chemnicius_n and_o lapid_n affirm_v 2_o to_o answer_v the_o question_n why_o john_n so_o severe_o receive_v these_o pharisee_n and_o sadducee_n the_o reason_n be_v 1_o because_o of_o the_o dangerousness_n of_o their_o error_n the_o pharisee_n out_o of_o persuasion_n of_o their_o own_o righteousness_n do_v not_o fear_v the_o wrath_n to_o come_v the_o sadducee_n out_o of_o their_o atheism_n do_v not_o fear_n or_o believe_v any_o wrath_n to_o come_v yet_o both_o make_v a_o show_n of_o religion_n 2_o they_o come_v to_o he_o dissemble_o with_o a_o mind_n to_o tempt_v he_o not_o to_o learn_v by_o he_o 3_o to_o gain_v a_o further_a opinion_n of_o holiness_n by_o be_v baptize_v of_o holy_a john_n 4_o hereby_o to_o stop_v john_n mouth_n that_o he_o may_v not_o thunder_v against_o their_o vice_n 5_o to_o discover_v they_o to_o all_o the_o multitude_n who_o be_v ready_a for_o their_o pretence_n to_o think_v otherwise_o of_o they_o and_o in_o danger_n to_o be_v delude_v by_o they_o 6_o that_o in_o the_o pharisee_n and_o sadducee_n who_o be_v most_o blame-worthy_a the_o multitude_n may_v not_o content_v themselves_o with_o a_o feign_a show_n of_o repentance_n 7_o to_o manifest_v his_o own_o sincerity_n in_o preach_v that_o though_o they_o be_v the_o most_o eminent_a man_n for_o place_n and_o learning_n yet_o he_o will_v not_o spare_v they_o in_o his_o ministry_n generation_n of_o viper_n john_n speech_n to_o they_o be_v partly_o reprehensory_a john_n allude_v to_o the_o devil_n that_o old_a serpent_n who_o offspring_n they_o be_v as_o also_o to_o the_o viper_n who_o skin_n be_v beautiful_a but_o her_o poison_n be_v in_o her_o tongue_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v you_o be_v a_o evil_a egg_n of_o a_o evil_a bird_n you_o be_v poisonous_a son_n of_o poisonous_a father_n christ_n apply_v these_o word_n to_o they_o matth._n 23.31_o you_o be_v the_o son_n of_o they_o who_o kill_v the_o prophet_n fill_v you_o up_o the_o measure_n of_o your_o father_n sin_n you_o serpent_n you_o generation_n of_o viper_n how_o can_v you_o escape_v the_o damnation_n of_o hell_n as_o the_o viper_n eat_v through_o the_o bowel_n of_o the_o dam_n that_o it_o may_v come_v to_o life_n plin._n l._n 10._o c._n 62._o rhodogin_n l._n 3._o c._n 37._o so_o you_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n kill_v your_o mother_n the_o synagogue_n and_o your_o spiritual_a father_n the_o prophet_n and_o faithful_a teacher_n that_o you_o may_v live_v in_o your_o pride_n and_o covetousness_n this_o comparison_n be_v make_v by_o hierom_n and_o other_o but_o experience_n have_v find_v the_o contrary_a true_a as_o gesner_n mathiolus_n and_o other_o therefore_o it_o be_v call_v vipera_fw-la quasi_fw-la vivipara_fw-la because_o that_o serpent_n do_v not_o lay_v egg_n but_o bring_v forth_o a_o live_a creature_n again_o as_o viper_n devour_v scorpion_n and_o therefore_o their_o poison_n become_v strong_a aristot_n lib._n 8._o hist_o animal_n c._n 29._o so_o the_o pharisee_n and_o sadducee_n eat_v the_o poisonous_a opinion_n of_o their_o rabbin_n by_o add_v their_o own_o increase_v the_o poison_n of_o their_o error_n again_o christ_n so_o call_v they_o to_o upbraid_v the_o whole_a order_n of_o they_o as_o well_o absent_a as_o present_v as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v both_o these_o faction_n beget_v serpent_n though_o they_o differ_v among_o themselves_o again_o as_o the_o viper_n be_v a_o most_o poisonous_a creature_n act_v 28.4_o serp._n gesner_n l._n de_fw-fr serp._n when_o the_o barbarian_n see_v the_o viper_n stick_v on_o paul_n hand_n they_o look_v upon_o he_o as_o a_o dead_a man_n their_o bite_a be_v count_v mortal_a in_o the_o three_o day_n at_o further_a such_o be_v the_o erroneous_a doctrine_n teach_v by_o pharisee_n and_o sadducee_n also_o their_o bitter_a slander_n against_o john_n baptist_n and_o christ_n moreover_o this_o phrase_n be_v take_v out_o of_o isai_n 59.5_o
therefore_o matthew_n mark_n and_o luke_n say_v as_o a_o dove_n and_o like_o a_o dove_n it_o be_v like_a it_o be_v of_o a_o fiery_a matter_n as_o the_o fiery_a tongue_n be_v the_o spirit_n appear_v in_o the_o likeness_n of_o a_o dove_n to_o show_v that_o that_o spirit_n that_o be_v in_o christ_n be_v full_a of_o meekness_n isai_n 42.1_o 2_o 3._o i_o have_v put_v my_o spirit_n upon_o he_o the_o bruise_a reed_n shall_v he_o not_o break_v nor_o smoke_a flax_n shall_v he_o not_o quench_v see_v matth._n 11.29_o again_o a_o dove_n represent_v the_o grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n isai_n 11.2_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n shall_v rest_v upon_o he_o to_o show_v the_o innocency_n purity_n and_o charity_n in_o christ_n a_o dove_n be_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o reparation_n of_o the_o world_n after_o the_o flood_n and_o here_o it_o be_v a_o sign_n of_o reconciliation_n by_o christ_n this_o dove_n be_v a_o fit_a resemblance_n to_o this_o lamb_n of_o god_n for_o as_o the_o lamb_n be_v most_o harmless_a among_o beast_n so_o be_v the_o dove_n among_o bird_n the_o flight_n of_o this_o dove_n denote_v the_o divine_a influence_n of_o the_o spirit_n come_v from_o heaven_n into_o the_o member_n of_o christ_n as_o well_o as_o into_o the_o head_n mahomet_n by_o put_v corn_n into_o his_o ear_n accustom_v a_o dove_n to_o fly_v to_o his_o ear_n which_o eat_v what_o be_v there_o put_v by_o this_o way_n he_o persuade_v the_o people_n the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v familiar_a with_o he_o and_o suggest_v to_o he_o his_o alcoran_n yet_o must_v we_o not_o think_v this_o substance_n or_o body_n resemble_v by_o a_o dove_n to_o be_v hypostatical_o unite_v to_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n as_o the_o humane_a nature_n of_o christ_n be_v to_o christ_n but_o as_o angel_n oftentimes_o take_v humane_a body_n and_o appear_v to_o man_n with_o they_o and_o lay_v aside_o those_o body_n afterward_o so_o do_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n as_o the_o heaven_n be_v open_v unto_o christ_n to_o show_v his_o doctrine_n be_v not_o earthly_a but_o heavenly_a so_o do_v the_o spirit_n come_v upon_o he_o to_o show_v his_o doctrine_n be_v the_o ministry_n of_o the_o spirit_n 2_o cor._n 3.8_o call_v the_o glorious_a ministration_n of_o the_o spirit_n this_o visible_a appearance_n of_o the_o spirit_n can_v not_o but_o send_v divers_a of_o the_o spectator_n to_o the_o perusal_n of_o those_o place_n of_o the_o prophet_n foremention_v isai_n 11.2.42.1_o 2_o 3.61.1_o especial_o christ_n so_o interpret_n the_o visible_a descent_n of_o the_o spirit_n upon_o he_o luke_n 4_o 18._o to_o conclude_v by_o this_o visible_a sign_n of_o a_o dove_n be_v show_v that_o christ_n be_v that_o harmless_a one_o in_o who_o the_o spirit_n have_v his_o constant_a residence_n in_o and_o through_o who_o alone_o we_o be_v to_o receive_v of_o the_o gift_n of_o his_o spirit_n for_o who_o sake_n rather_o than_o for_o his_o own_o in_o who_o the_o fullness_n of_o the_o godhead_n dwell_v bodily_a this_o spirit_n descend_v upon_o he_o and_o especial_o for_o john_n sake_n to_o who_o this_o sign_n be_v promise_v whereby_o he_o shall_v be_v certify_v in_o a_o most_o absolute_a clearness_n of_o the_o person_n of_o the_o messiah_n john_n 1.32_o on_o who_o thou_o shall_v see_v the_o spirit_n descend_v like_o a_o dove_n that_o same_o be_v he_o this_o spirit_n john_n be_v say_v to_o see_v not_o essential_o but_o believe_o for_o by_o a_o metonymy_a the_o name_n of_o the_o spiritual_a thing_n be_v give_v to_o the_o visible_a sign_n v._o 17._o and_o lo_o a_o voice_n from_o heaven_n say_v this_o be_v my_o belove_a son_n in_o who_o i_o be_o well_o please_v we_o have_v here_o the_o three_o sign_n confirm_v the_o call_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o instalment_n into_o his_o office_n viz._n a_o voice_n from_o heaven_n when_o the_o heaven_n cleave_v that_o voice_n sound_v it_o be_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o father_n doubtless_o in_o that_o he_o say_v this_o be_v my_o belove_a son_n here_o be_v the_o first_o clear_a revelation_n of_o the_o trinity_n under_o the_o new_a testament_n the_o father_n show_v himself_o in_o a_o voice_n the_o son_n in_o the_o flesh_n or_o humane_a nature_n the_o spirit_n in_o the_o likeness_n of_o a_o dove_n this_o be_v my_o belove_a son_n not_o a_o adoptive_a but_o only_o beget_v my_o only_a everlasting_a and_o coequal_a son_n these_o word_n be_v partly_o take_v out_o of_o the_o second_o psalm_n v._n 7._o i_o will_v declare_v the_o decree_n the_o lord_n say_v unto_o i_o thou_o be_v my_o son_n by_o this_o forementioned_a voice_n he_o make_v his_o son_n king_n upon_o zion_n that_o psalm_n be_v to_o be_v refer_v to_o this_o of_o this_o belove_a son_n isaak_n be_v a_o type_n gen._n 22.2_o take_v thy_o son_n thy_o only_a son_n thy_o son_n who_o thou_o love_v and_o so_o be_v solomon_n call_v jedidiah_n or_o the_o belove_a of_o the_o lord_n oft_o be_v christ_n call_v belove_v in_o the_o book_n of_o canticle_n the_o father_n voice_n may_v have_v respect_n to_o these_o figure_n of_o this_o christ_n speak_v john_n 17.26_o i_o pray_v that_o the_o love_n wherewith_o thou_o love_v i_o may_v be_v in_o they_o ephes_n 1.6_o we_o be_v say_v to_o be_v accept_v in_o this_o belove_a in_o who_o i_o be_o well_o please_a the_o same_o with_o that_o in_o who_o my_o soul_n be_v well_o please_v matth._n 12.18_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v thou_o my_o son_n only_o and_o chief_o belove_v please_v i_o in_o all_o thing_n and_o that_o infinite_o and_o no_o man_n please_v i_o but_o by_o thou_o yea_o by_o thou_o be_o i_o appease_v with_o all_o they_o i_o have_v give_v thou_o at_o who_o i_o be_v offend_v by_o the_o sin_n of_o adam_n and_o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o thou_o that_o displease_v i_o enoch_n please_v i_o heb._n 11.5_o but_o not_o so_o as_o thou_o do_v for_o in_o thou_o i_o be_o appease_v and_o reconcile_v to_o the_o world_n of_o believer_n the_o show_n of_o a_o dove_n be_v a_o dumb_a thing_n therefore_o here_o be_v a_o voice_n to_o make_v all_o thing_n concern_v the_o messiah_n out_o of_o question_n and_o also_o open_v the_o whole_a mystery_n of_o our_o redemption_n for_o what_o be_v our_o redemption_n but_o this_o whereas_o former_o we_o be_v at_o enmity_n with_o god_n now_o god_n be_v well_o please_v with_o we_o in_o christ_n 2_o cor._n 5.19_o god_n be_v in_o christ_n reconcile_n the_o world_n to_o himself_o these_o word_n be_v take_v out_o of_o isai_n 42.1_o and_o in_o that_o chapter_n be_v the_o call_n and_o send_v of_o christ_n to_o his_o ministry_n describe_v and_o indeed_o the_o whole_a scripture_n whence_o some_o word_n be_v take_v shall_v be_v look_v into_o to_o this_o in_o the_o transfiguration_n be_v add_v hear_v he_o not_o plato_n socrates_n moses_n further_a than_o he_o witness_n of_o christ_n but_o hear_v he_o who_o be_v in_o my_o bosom_n john_n 1.18_o shall_v reveal_v my_o mystery_n which_o have_v be_v hide_v from_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n he_o shall_v open_v the_o way_n to_o heaven_n to_o you_o chap._n iu._n in_o this_o chapter_n there_o be_v four_o part_n 1_o christ_n his_o tentation_n from_o v._o 1._o to_o v._o 12._o 2_o christ_n preach_v in_o galilee_n from_o v._o 12._o to_o v._o 18._o 3_o christ_n calling_n of_o four_o disciple_n peter_n andrew_n james_n john_n 4_o the_o confirmation_n of_o his_o doctrine_n by_o miracle_n v._o 23_o 24_o 25._o in_o the_o temptation_n observe_v 1_o the_o time_n v._o 1._o immediate_o after_o baptism_n 2_o the_o place_n in_o the_o wilderness_n v._o 1._o 3_o the_o efficient_a cause_n viz._n the_o spirit_n of_o god_n 4_o the_o end_n to_o be_v tempt_v of_o the_o devil_n v._o 1._o 5_o the_o kind_n of_o the_o temptation_n which_o be_v three_o 1_o to_o unbelief_n v._o 2_o 3._o 2_o to_o presumption_n v._o 5_o 6._o cast_v thyself_o down_o for_o he_o shall_v give_v his_o angel_n charge_v of_o thou_o 3_o to_o the_o vain_a glory_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o world_n v._o 7_o 8_o 9_o 6_o the_o victory_n christ_n get_v over_o these_o temptation_n so_o that_o the_o devil_n be_v force_v to_o give_v ground_n five_o 11._o amplify_v from_o the_o weapon_n wherewith_o christ_n overcome_v he_o which_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n 7_o the_o comfort_n christ_n have_v after_o the_o temptation_n be_v over_o the_o angel_n come_v and_o minister_v to_o he_o v._o 1._o then_o be_v jesus_n lead_v up_o of_o the_o spirit_n into_o the_o wilderness_n to_o be_v tempt_v of_o the_o devil_n this_o temptation_n of_o christ_n be_v set_v down_o 1_o from_o the_o time_n then_o when_o even_o present_o after_o his_o baptism_n mark_v 1.12_o immediate_o the_o spirit_n drive_v he_o into_o the_o wilderness_n and_o be_v full_a of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n he_o be_v lead_v by_o
that_o be_v from_o the_o country_n place_v beyond_o jordan_n in_o respect_n of_o calilee_n as_o gilead_n trachonitis_n abilene_n and_o all_o that_o country_n that_o fomer_o belong_v to_o sihon_n and_o og_n and_o the_o country_n of_o arabia_n which_o be_v the_o happy_a arabia_n abound_v with_o spice_n and_o the_o rocky_a arabia_n and_o the_o desert_n arabia_n which_o be_v a_o wilderness_n and_o from_o many_o other_o remote_a country_n so_o that_o a_o while_n after_o christ_n his_o death_n justin_n martyr_n say_v there_o be_v no_o one_o kind_a of_o mortal_n whether_o barbarian_n or_o greek_n or_o by_o what_o other_o name_n they_o be_v call_v either_o of_o the_o hamazobians_n or_o nomades_n that_o want_v a_o house_n and_o live_v in_o tent_n among_o who_o by_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n christ_n crucify_v prayer_n and_o thanksgiving_n be_v not_o make_v to_o the_o father_n and_o creator_n of_o all_o thing_n justin_n count_v tryph._n chap._n v._n we_o have_v in_o this_o sermon_n 1_o the_o preface_n v._o 1._o 2_o the_o sermon_n in_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o chapter_n v._o 1._o in_o the_o preface_n observe_v 1_o the_o author_n of_o the_o sermon_n viz._n he_o that_o be_v jesus_n 2_o the_o place_n where_o it_o be_v in_o the_o mount_n 3_o the_o occasion_n see_v multitude_n follow_v he_o 4_o the_o person_n he_o teach_v his_o disciple_n 5_o the_o gesture_n he_o use_v he_o sit_v 1_o the_o author_n of_o the_o sermon_n viz._n jesus_n christ_n wherein_o he_o propound_v a_o new_a law_n far_o more_o perfect_a than_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n wherein_o there_o be_v divers_a thing_n add_v for_o to_o this_o thou_o shall_v not_o commit_v adultery_n be_v add_v he_o that_o look_v upon_o a_o woman_n to_o lust_n after_o she_o have_v commit_v adultery_n with_o she_o in_o his_o heart_n instead_o of_o thou_o shall_v not_o kill_v he_o that_o shall_v say_v to_o his_o brother_n racha_n shall_v be_v guilty_a of_o hell_n fire_n be_v not_o the_o law_n of_o commit_v of_o adultery_n safe_a to_o which_o the_o law_n of_o not_o lust_a be_v add_v tert._n de_fw-fr pudicitiâ_fw-la all_o conclude_v that_o christ_n intent_n be_v to_o clear_v the_o true_a meaning_n of_o moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n which_o be_v corrupt_v by_o the_o false_a gloss_n of_o the_o jewish_a teacher_n but_o it_o seem_v to_o i_o that_o christ_n add_v some_o thing_n not_o only_o by_o way_n of_o explication_n but_o by_o way_n of_o rule_n and_o this_o he_o do_v as_o the_o prophet_n of_o his_o church_n who_o we_o be_v to_o hear_v in_o all_o thing_n act_n 3.22_o 2_o the_o place_n where_o it_o be_v in_o the_o mount_n thither_o he_o go_v to_o spend_v the_o night_n in_o prayer_n in_o order_n to_o the_o call_n of_o his_o twelve_o disciple_n for_o this_o sermon_n and_o that_o luk._n 6._o be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o as_o appear_v by_o their_o matter_n and_o subject_v this_o mount_n be_v suppose_v by_o chorographer_n to_o be_v 〈…〉_o saida_o and_o here_o christ_n call_v his_o disciple_n unto_o he_o and_o choose_v out_o of_o they_o twelve_o who_o he_o call_v apostle_n and_o send_v they_o forth_o to_o preach_v in_o the_o top_n of_o this_o mountain_n christ_n choose_v his_o twelve_o apostle_n in_o the_o descent_n of_o the_o mountain_n he_o preach_v this_o sermon_n both_o matthew_n and_o luke_n gather_v the_o chief_a point_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n into_o one_o place_n 3_o the_o occasion_n which_o be_v not_o only_a disciple_n but_o multitude_n be_v there_o present_a teacher_n shall_v observe_v opportunity_n when_o to_o preach_v we_o may_v desire_v to_o preach_v among_o multitude_n not_o for_o vainglory_n sake_n but_o because_o where_o there_o be_v many_o its_o like_a some_o or_o more_o will_v be_v wrought_v upon_o 4_o the_o gesture_n he_o sit_v luke_n 4.16_o he_o stand_v up_o and_o read_v his_o text_n and_o then_o sit_v down_o and_o preach_v he_o sit_v among_o the_o doctor_n hear_v and_o ask_v they_o question_n luk._n 2.46_o be_v apprehend_v he_o tell_v the_o multitude_n i_o sit_v daily_o with_o you_o in_o the_o temple_n teach_v matth._n 26.55_o christ_n teach_v sit_v because_o it_o be_v the_o manner_n and_o custom_n of_o the_o teacher_n of_o that_o church_n so_o to_o do_v matth._n 23.2_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n sit_v in_o moses_n chair_n luk._n 5.3_o he_o sit_v down_o and_o teach_v the_o people_n out_o of_o the_o ship_n christ_n sit_v down_o either_o because_o he_o be_v weary_a in_o go_v up_o the_o mount_n or_o because_o of_o the_o length_n of_o his_o sermon_n which_o if_o deliver_v with_o amplification_n will_v have_v weary_v he_o stand_v and_o to_o show_v that_o preacher_n be_v not_o confine_v to_o one_o kind_n of_o gesture_n but_o as_o christ_n sometime_o preach_v sit_v sometime_o stand_v so_o may_v they_o 5_o who_o christ_n teach_v viz._n his_o disciple_n who_o to_o prevent_v the_o multitude_n that_o will_v have_v press_v he_o stand_v near_o he_o yet_o do_v he_o not_o only_o teach_v they_o but_o also_o teach_v the_o multitude_n v._o 2_o 3._o and_o he_o open_v his_o mouth_n and_o teach_v they_o say_v bless_a be_v the_o poor_a in_o spirit_n for_o they_o be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n he_o open_v his_o mouth_n that_o be_v christ_n that_o have_v former_o open_v the_o mouth_n of_o the_o prophet_n now_o open_v his_o own_o mouth_n heb._n 1.1_o god_n who_o at_o sundry_a time_n and_o in_o divers_a manner_n speak_v unto_o the_o father_n have_v in_o these_o last_o time_n speak_v unto_o we_o by_o his_o son_n bless_a be_v the_o poor_a in_o spirit_n in_o these_o word_n two_o thing_n be_v considerable_a 1_o the_o happy_a and_o bless_a condition_n of_o they_o that_o be_v poor_a in_o spirit_n 2._o the_o reason_n of_o it_o for_o they_o be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n for_o the_o former_a obs_n poverty_n of_o spirit_n be_v a_o bless_a frame_n of_o spirit_n but_o before_o i_o come_v to_o open_v this_o point_n let_v i_o lay_v down_o some_o caution_n as_o 1_o that_o christ_n show_v not_o by_o what_o mean_v we_o may_v come_v to_o blessedness_n but_o only_o the_o qualification_n of_o they_o that_o do_v attain_v it_o as_o in_o ps_n 15._o in_o the_o whole_a psalm_n much_o less_o do_v christ_n set_v down_o by_o what_o merit_v we_o obtain_v blessedness_n he_o show_v what_o manner_n of_o person_n he_o will_v have_v they_o to_o be_v who_o expect_v blessedness_n viz._n poor_a in_o spirit_n mourner_n meek_a merciful_a hunger_a after_o righteousness_n these_o be_v rather_o note_n of_o bless_a man_n than_o procure_a cause_n of_o blessedness_n such_o we_o be_v to_o put_v difference_n betwixt_o scripture_n that_o speak_v of_o the_o cause_n of_o blessedness_n such_o as_o these_o john_n 3.16_o 6.54_o 8.24_o psalm_n 32.1_o and_o those_o that_o speak_v of_o the_o property_n of_o blessedness_n such_o as_o psalm_n 1.1_o 112.1_o james_n 2.1_o so_o that_o we_o see_v the_o meaning_n why_o christ_n say_v not_o bless_a be_v they_o that_o be_v redeem_v with_o blood_n or_o bless_v be_v they_o which_o believe_v in_o i_o because_o he_o will_v teach_v not_o wherefore_o we_o be_v bless_v but_o who_o they_o be_v that_o be_v bless_v four_o thing_n to_o be_v discuss_v 1_o what_o it_o be_v 2_o ground_n of_o it_o 3_o trial_n 4_o mean_n to_o it_o 1_o what_o spiritual_a poverty_n be_v it_o be_v whereby_o he_o poor_a soul_n have_v some_o grace_n see_v a_o want_n of_o further_a grace_n and_o so_o go_v for_o supply_v out_o of_o himself_o to_o find_v it_o in_o christ_n there_o be_v two_o degree_n of_o it_o 1_o when_o we_o be_v convince_v of_o our_o miserable_a estate_n by_o nature_n so_o that_o the_o soul_n desire_v to_o be_v otherwise_o then_o it_o be_v joh._n 16.10_o 2_o after_o we_o be_v in_o christ_n whence_o follow_v 1_o sight_n of_o emptiness_n in_o all_o thing_n save_o christ_n phil._n 3.8_o compare_v with_o christ_n the_o soul_n count_v they_o dung_n 2_o self_n abasement_n luke_n 18.13_o the_o publican_n cry_v god_n be_v merciful_a to_o i_o a_o sinner_n phil._n 3.8_o paul_n call_v himself_o less_o than_o the_o least_o of_o all_o saint_n 3_o earnest_a desire_n after_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n esa_n 41.17_o 18._o when_o the_o poor_a and_o needy_a seek_v water_n i_o will_v open_v river_n in_o high_a place_n and_o fountain_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o valley_n take_v we_o notice_n of_o our_o poverty_n by_o nature_n we_o be_v not_o able_a to_o pay_v our_o debt_n and_o apt_a to_o be_v cast_v in_o prison_n for_o they_o ground_n of_o spiritual_a poverty_n 1_o else_o we_o will_v not_o come_v to_o christ_n the_o prodigal_a come_v not_o to_o his_o father_n till_o he_o see_v himself_o poor_a 2_o this_o be_v the_o end_n of_o god_n permit_v we_o to_o fall_v god_n leave_v hezekiah_n to_o try_v he_o that_o he_o may_v know_v all_o that_o be_v in_o
we_o shall_v then_o know_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o scripture_n of_o providence_n of_o the_o trinity_n of_o the_o incarnation_n 5_o communion_n if_o the_o communion_n betwixt_o the_o mother_n and_o her_o little_a smile_a infant_n betwixt_o husband_n and_o wife_n betwixt_o friend_n and_o friend_n be_v so_o sweet_a which_o communion_n be_v not_o so_o appropriate_a to_o any_o but_o that_o all_o saint_n enjoy_v it_o as_o all_o creature_n enjoy_v the_o sun_n which_o yet_o be_v enjoy_v of_o every_o individual_a creature_n 6_o joy_n the_o joy_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v only_o the_o earnest_n hereof_o eph._n 1.14_o the_o joy_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n exceed_v the_o joy_n of_o the_o world_n 1_o pet._n 1.8_o the_o joy_n of_o heaven_n exceed_v the_o joy_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o the_o whole_a bargain_n do_v the_o earnest_n but_o the_o joy_n and_o glory_n of_o heaven_n which_o saint_n shall_v have_v at_o the_o last_o judgement_n or_o manifestation_n of_o god_n son_n shall_v exceed_v what_o they_o have_v now_o hence_o they_o groan_v for_o the_o adoption_n of_o their_o body_n rom._n 8.23_o the_o saint_n depart_v till_o their_o fellow_n come_v to_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v make_v perfect_a heb._n 11.40_o when_o the_o whole_a number_n of_o the_o faithful_a shall_v come_v together_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o new_a treasure_n of_o glory_n break_v up_o 2_o thess_n 1.10_o he_o shall_v come_v to_o be_v glorify_v of_o his_o saint_n and_o to_o be_v admire_v of_o all_o they_o that_o believe_v now_o their_o admiration_n must_v needs_o arise_v from_o some_o new_a glory_n they_o have_v not_o see_v before_o in_o that_o day_n heaven_n itself_o shall_v be_v open_v there_o shall_v not_o be_v only_o a_o drop_n the_o whole_a godhead_n shall_v manifest_v himself_o there_o we_o shall_v rejoice_v at_o this_o voice_n i_o be_o joseph_n this_o joy_n be_v demonstrate_v 1_o from_o the_o object_n the_o behold_v of_o god_n alone_o though_o there_o be_v neither_o saint_n nor_o angel_n make_v we_o happy_a rev._n 21.7_o he_o that_o overcome_v shall_v inherit_v all_o thing_n how_o i_o will_v be_v his_o god_n he_o have_v all_o thing_n that_o have_v he_o that_o have_v all_o thing_n 1_o cor._n 15.28_o god_n shall_v be_v all_o in_o all_o you_o need_v not_o in_o glory_n to_o step_v to_o any_o creature_n 2_o the_o subject_n of_o this_o joy_n be_v the_o general_a assembly_n of_o the_o first_o bear_v who_o name_n be_v write_v in_o heaven_n the_o righteous_a shall_v shine_v as_o the_o sun_n matth._n 13.43_o so_o that_o as_o a_o drop_n of_o water_n pour_v into_o a_o vessel_n of_o wine_n lose_v both_o taste_n and_o colour_n and_o become_v wine_n or_o as_o iron_n put_v into_o the_o fire_n do_v after_o a_o sort_n take_v the_o nature_n of_o fire_n or_o as_o the_o air_n enlighten_v with_o the_o sun_n seem_v not_o so_o much_o to_o be_v enlighten_v as_o to_o be_v light_n itself_o so_o shall_v we_o in_o the_o future_a glory_n be_v transform_v that_o we_o shall_v not_o so_o seem_v to_o be_v glorify_v as_o glory_v itself_o so_o far_o as_o this_o present_a world_n surmount_v that_o life_n we_o live_v in_o our_o mother_n womb_n so_o far_o do_v the_o life_n in_o glory_n surmount_v this_o present_a life_n when_o we_o be_v in_o our_o mother_n womb_n we_o can_v not_o have_v imagine_v that_o we_o be_v to_o come_v into_o such_o a_o spacious_a world_n so_o full_a of_o glorious_a object_n why_o shall_v we_o then_o doubt_v of_o the_o glory_n of_o that_o future_a state_n 3_o the_o propriety_n of_o this_o glory_n and_o joy_n it_o be_v not_o bare_o the_o behold_n of_o glory_n that_o make_v we_o happy_a for_o some_o think_v the_o goat_n shall_v behold_v the_o happiness_n of_o the_o sheep_n at_o the_o last_o to_o increase_v their_o misery_n therefore_o all_o this_o glory_n shall_v be_v you_o john_n 17.22_o the_o glory_n which_o thou_o give_v i_o i_o have_v give_v they_o ephes_n 1.19_o there_o be_v a_o riches_n of_o glory_n in_o the_o saint_n use_v for_o application_n let_v it_o provoke_v we_o to_o holiness_n and_o purity_n heb_fw-mi 12.14_o follow_v holiness_n without_o which_o no_o man_n shall_v see_v the_o lord_n psalm_n 17.15_o i_o shall_v behold_v thy_o face_n in_o righteousness_n i_o shall_v be_v satisfy_v when_o i_o awake_v with_o thy_o likeness_n q_o d_o when_o my_o enemy_n abound_v with_o earthly_a happiness_n and_o delight_n and_o leave_v their_o treasure_n to_o their_o child_n i_o shall_v be_v satisfy_v with_o the_o behold_n of_o thou_o i_o shall_v appear_v before_o thou_o in_o righteousness_n that_o be_v in_o the_o righteousness_n of_o my_o cause_n of_o which_o v_a 1_o and_o when_o i_o awake_v out_o of_o these_o present_a trouble_n and_o at_o the_o resurrection_n i_o shall_v be_v satisfy_v with_o thy_o likeness_n that_o be_v if_o there_o be_v neither_o saint_n nor_o angel_n thou_o will_v full_o satisfy_v i_o thus_o paul_n like_o a_o stout_a runner_n press_v towards_o the_o mark_n of_o holiness_n for_o the_o prize_n of_o glory_n as_o he_o that_o run_v in_o a_o race_n run_v towards_o the_o goal_n for_o the_o prize_n phil_n 3.13_o 1_o cor_n 9.25_o 26_o where_o god_n mean_v to_o bestow_v heaven_n he_o first_o bestow_v heavenly_a quality_n if_o heaven_n vomit_v out_o unholy_a angel_n or_o at_o least_o they_o leave_v it_o of_o their_o own_o accord_n judas_n 6_o then_o will_v it_o not_o receive_v profane_a person_n without_o be_v dog_n revel_v 22.15_o and_o thereinto_o enter_v nothing_o that_o defile_v nor_o that_o work_v abomination_n 2_o exhortation_n to_o holy_a person_n to_o long_o for_o this_o sight_n of_o god_n we_o shall_v see_v he_o not_o quantus_fw-la sed_fw-la qualis_fw-la est_fw-la not_o according_a to_o his_o greatness_n but_o according_a to_o his_o glory_n 1._o john_n 3.2_o we_o shall_v see_v he_o as_o he_o be_v we_o shall_v not_o see_v god_n infinite_o in_o himself_o but_o comprehensive_o so_o far_o as_o we_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o comprehend_v as_o bottle_n cast_v into_o the_o sea_n can_v receive_v the_o whole_a sea_n but_o only_o according_a to_o their_o capacity_n this_o be_v job_n comfort_n when_o his_o reins_o be_v consume_v within_o he_o yet_o that_o he_o shall_v see_v god_n job_n 19.25_o if_o in_o this_o world_n we_o take_v such_o delight_n in_o the_o behold_n of_o beautiful_a creature_n as_o sun_n moon_n star_n meadow_n fountain_n river_n child_n pearl_n what_o delight_n shall_v we_o take_v in_o the_o behold_n of_o god_n the_o behold_v of_o who_o shall_v dim_v all_o other_o beauty_n as_o the_o light_n of_o the_o sun_n do_v the_o light_n of_o a_o candle_n but_o woeful_a will_n wicked_a man_n be_v who_o shall_v be_v sever_v from_o the_o bless_a presence_n and_o face_n of_o god_n 2_o thess_n 1.9_o it_o be_v the_o aggravation_n of_o haman_n misery_n that_o he_o have_v his_o face_n cover_v that_o he_o may_v not_o see_v the_o king_n hester_n 7.8_o much_o more_o woeful_a will_v the_o case_n of_o wicked_a man_n be_v after_o they_o have_v receive_v their_o sentence_n they_o shall_v never_o see_v the_o king_n face_n more_o object_n but_o god_n be_v invisible_a col._n 1.15_o who_o no_o man_n have_v see_v nor_o can_v see_v 1_o tim_n 6.16_o john_n 1.18_o no_o man_n have_v see_v god_n at_o any_o time_n answ_n in_o this_o present_a life_n no_o man_n can_v see_v god_n face_n and_o live_v exod_a 33.20_o we_o can_v see_v god_n with_o bodily_a eye_n in_o this_o life_n because_o the_o act_n of_o see_v presuppose_v a_o visible_a object_n but_o in_o god_n there_o be_v neither_o bodily_a light_n colour_n nor_o figure_n beside_o the_o father_n never_o take_v any_o visible_a shape_n upon_o he_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n the_o son_n be_v wont_a to_o appear_v by_o assume_v some_o creature_n upon_o he_o and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n appear_v in_o the_o shape_n of_o a_o dove_n and_o of_o fiery_a tongue_n but_o the_o father_n seldom_o or_o never_o take_v any_o shape_n upon_o he_o foolish_a be_v that_o idolatry_n that_o must_v have_v a_o visible_a god_n these_o be_v thy_o god_n o_o israel_n exod_n 32.4_o object_n exod_n 23.9_o 10_o 11_o aaron_z and_o moses_n nadab_n and_o abihu_n and_o seventy_o of_o the_o elder_n go_v up_o into_o the_o mount_n and_o see_v the_o god_n of_o israel_n and_o there_o be_v under_o his_o foot_n a_o pave_a work_n of_o a_o saphire-stone_n and_o the_o body_n of_o heaven_n as_o it_o be_v in_o his_o brightness_n also_o v._n 11_o the_o noble_n of_o israel_n see_v god_n and_o do_v eat_v and_o drink_v answ_n they_o see_v not_o god_n in_o his_o essence_n but_o in_o a_o shadow_n that_o be_v in_o some_o sensible_a shape_n which_o god_n be_v please_v to_o choose_v and_o man_n frailty_n can_v bear_v for_o that_o saphire-pavement_n that_o be_v under_o his_o foot_n be_v mean_v the_o glorious_a majesty_n of_o
only_o instrumental_a to_o obtain_v pardon_n for_o our_o enemy_n as_o the_o prayer_n of_o christ_n and_o stephen_n do_v but_o be_v argument_n or_o evidence_n of_o god_n pardon_v we_o what_o a_o bless_a thing_n will_v it_o be_v at_o the_o day_n of_o christ_n to_o appear_v to_o have_v be_v a_o mean_a by_o thy_o prayer_n of_o save_v the_o soul_n of_o a_o persecute_v enemy_n when_o david_n enemy_n compass_v he_o with_o word_n of_o hatred_n and_o become_v adversary_n to_o he_o for_o his_o love_n to_o they_o he_o give_v himself_o to_o prayer_n psalm_n 109.3_o 4_o 5._o v._o 45._o that_o you_o may_v be_v the_o child_n of_o your_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n for_o he_o make_v his_o sun_n to_o rise_v on_o the_o evil_a and_o on_o the_o good_a and_o send_v rain_n on_o the_o just_a and_o unjust_a christ_n here_o give_v reason_n why_o we_o shall_v love_v our_o enemy_n as_o 1_o that_o you_o may_v be_v the_o child_n of_o your_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n not_o that_o love_n to_o our_o enemy_n be_v the_o form_n of_o our_o adoption_n but_o a_o demonstration_n thereof_o that_o you_o may_v be_v phil._n 2.15_o that_o be_v that_o you_o may_v be_v make_v manifest_a to_o be_v he_o that_o perform_v not_o this_o duty_n be_v none_o of_o god_n child_n love_n to_o enemy_n do_v manifest_v our_o adoption_n because_o love_n to_o our_o enemy_n do_v flow_v from_o that_o love_n god_n have_v show_v to_o we_o when_o we_o be_v enemy_n 1_o john_n 4.10_o 11._o of_o all_o duty_n christian_n shall_v be_v careful_a to_o practice_v those_o which_o evidence_n assurance_n 2_o peter_n 1.10_o this_o duty_n tend_v thereunto_o what_o shall_v we_o think_v of_o those_o who_o be_v so_o far_o from_o love_v their_o enemy_n that_o they_o do_v not_o love_v their_o friend_n these_o be_v like_o the_o rebellious_a angel_n who_o have_v have_v a_o bless_a nature_n from_o god_n set_v he_o at_o nought_o many_o have_v such_o a_o frame_n of_o spirit_n as_o achitophel_n have_v to_o david_n psalm_n 55.12_o 13._o and_o joas_n to_o jehoiada_n 2_o chron._n 24.22_o many_o man_n lay_v aside_o not_o only_o grace_v but_o even_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n also_o that_o you_o may_v be_v the_o child_n of_o your_o father_n that_o be_v like_v to_o your_o father_n as_o child_n to_o their_o father_n your_o father_n do_v good_a to_o his_o enemy_n give_v they_o the_o sun_n to_o shine_v on_o they_o and_o the_o rain_n to_o fall_v on_o their_o land_n to_o make_v it_o fruitful_a be_v you_o like_o he_o ephes_n 4._o ult_n compare_v with_o cap._n 5.1_o 2._o he_o that_o be_v like_o another_o be_v proverbial_o say_v to_o be_v his_o son_n who_o make_v his_o sun_n to_o rise_v and_o his_o rain_n to_o fall_v all_o nation_n refer_v the_o effect_n of_o nature_n to_o the_o god_n of_o nature_n hence_o these_o phrase_n it_o rain_v it_o thunder_v that_o be_v god_n rain_v and_o thunder_n psalm_n 19.4_o 5._o in_o the_o heaven_n have_v he_o set_v a_o tabernacle_n for_o the_o sun_n which_o be_v remove_v as_o a_o tabernacle_n from_o place_n to_o place_n the_o day_n be_v thou_o and_o the_o night_n be_v thou_o thou_o have_v prepare_v the_o light_n and_o the_o sun_n psalm_n 74.16_o to_o he_o that_o make_v great_a light_n psalm_n 136.8_o 9_o also_o for_o the_o rain_n it_o be_v from_o he_o he_o say_v to_o the_o small_a rain_n and_o to_o the_o great_a rain_n be_v thou_o on_o the_o earth_n job_n 37.4_o learn_v 1._o to_o acknowledge_v the_o high_a cause_n on_o who_o all_o second_o cause_n depend_v as_o in_o body_n politic_a inferior_a government_n depend_v on_o the_o superior_a or_o as_o in_o artificial_a motion_n the_o inferior_a depend_v on_o the_o superior_a as_o in_o motion_n of_o clock_n and_o watch_n so_o the_o secondary_a cause_n depend_v upon_o the_o first_o he_o give_v the_o early_a and_o latter_a rain_n in_o drought_n therefore_o seek_v to_o god_n for_o rain_n 2_o chron._n 7.13_o jer._n 14.22_o in_o immoderate_a rains_n seek_v to_o god_n for_o fair_a weather_n isai_n 38.8_o 2_o praise_v god_n for_o fruitful_a season_n psalm_n 147.7_o 8_o 9_o 3_o see_v outward_a thing_n fall_v alike_o to_o all_o the_o sun_n shine_v to_o all_o the_o rain_n fall_v on_o all_o eccles_n 9.1_o 2._o v._o 46._o for_o if_o you_o love_v they_o which_o love_v you_o what_o reward_n have_v you_o do_v not_o even_o the_o publican_n the_o same_o here_o be_v a_o three_o reason_n from_o the_o unprofitableness_n of_o other_o love_n which_o arise_v from_o natural_a friendship_n or_o that_o which_o arise_v from_o our_o own_o profit_n and_o benefit_n which_o have_v no_o reward_n with_o god_n whereas_o love_n that_o be_v do_v for_o god_n sake_n have_v a_o reward_n with_o god_n he_o that_o love_v not_o his_o enemy_n declare_v that_o he_o love_v not_o his_o friend_n for_o god_n sake_n but_o for_o his_o own_o sake_n because_o his_o enemy_n in_o some_o sense_n may_v be_v say_v to_o bear_v the_o image_n of_o god_n as_o well_o as_o his_o friend_n do_v not_o even_o the_o publican_n the_o same_o they_o be_v call_v publican_n from_o public_a because_o they_o gather_v the_o public_a tribute_n wherein_o too_o oft_o they_o oppress_v the_o poor_a and_o so_o become_v infamous_a among_o the_o jew_n not_o because_o they_o gather_v the_o magistrate_n tribute_n nor_o as_o if_o these_o publican_n be_v the_o worst_a of_o man_n but_o christ_n speak_v according_a to_o the_o receive_a opinion_n of_o man_n for_o matthew_n and_o zacheus_n be_v publican_n it_o be_v like_a in_o all_o the_o roman_a province_n and_o so_o in_o judea_n the_o roman_n farm_a the_o custom_n but_o they_o let_v it_o out_o to_o the_o jew_n and_o so_o this_o become_v abominable_a to_o other_o of_o the_o jew_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v instrument_n of_o their_o slavery_n and_o therefore_o publican_n be_v join_v with_o heathen_n and_o sinner_n and_o therefore_o as_o appear_v out_o of_o the_o thalmud_n they_o be_v not_o admit_v to_o be_v witness_n before_o the_o jewish_a judge_n what_o reward_n have_v you_o i.e._n no_o reward_n for_o you_o receive_v a_o reward_n from_o your_o friend_n even_o like_o love_n but_o if_o from_o faith_n in_o god_n command_v you_o love_v both_o your_o enemy_n and_o your_o friend_n you_o may_v hope_v for_o a_o gracious_a reward_n sylla_n boast_v that_o he_o overcome_v his_o friend_n with_o benefit_n and_o his_o enemy_n with_o mischief_n and_o therefore_o as_o plutarch_n in_o his_o life_n say_v he_o cruel_o tear_v marius_n but_o let_v christian_n overcome_v enemy_n with_o good_a turn_n how_o much_o better_o do_v photion_n who_o be_v condemn_v to_o death_n be_v ask_v of_o his_o friend_n what_o he_o will_v have_v tell_v to_o his_o son_n answer_v i_o will_v that_o he_o forget_v the_o wrong_n the_o athenian_n have_v do_v to_o i_o if_o heathen_n do_v thus_o what_o shall_v christian_n do_v v._o 47._o and_o if_o you_o salute_v your_o brethren_n only_o what_o do_v you_o more_o than_o other_o do_v not_o even_o the_o publican_n so_o here_o be_v a_o four_o reason_n because_o salutation_n belong_v and_o aught_o to_o be_v perform_v not_o only_o to_o brethren_n and_o friend_n but_o also_o to_o enemy_n under_o salutation_n christ_n comprehend_v all_o sign_n of_o good_a will_n as_o put_v off_o the_o hat_n embracement_n ask_v how_o they_o do_v so_o that_o the_o four_o reason_n be_v take_v from_o the_o difference_n of_o christian_a love_n and_o that_o which_o be_v worldly_a the_o one_o salute_v friend_n only_o the_o other_o salute_v enemy_n unless_o then_o your_o love_n extend_v to_o enemy_n you_o differ_v nothing_o from_o the_o publican_n charity_n these_o duty_n of_o salutation_n as_o ask_v be_v all_o well_o 2_o kin._n 9.17_o 18_o 19_o 22._o three_o time_n this_o salutation_n be_v mention_v be_v it_o peace_n how_o do_v you_o all_o at_o home_n these_o duty_n the_o jew_n do_v only_o to_o their_o fellow_n jew_n judge_v all_o other_o unworthy_a of_o salutation_n now_o christian_a religion_n teach_v we_o to_o salute_v all_o except_o it_o be_v those_o who_o be_v apostate_n from_o christianity_n 2_o epist_n of_o john_n v._o 10._o if_o there_o come_v any_o unto_o you_o and_o bring_v not_o this_o doctrine_n receive_v he_o not_o into_o your_o house_n neither_o bid_v he_o god_n speed_n for_o he_o that_o bid_v he_o god_n speed_n be_v partaker_n of_o his_o evil_a deed_n for_o that_o command_n of_o luke_n 10.4_o salute_v no_o man_n by_o the_o way_n christ_n mean_v they_o shall_v make_v such_o haste_n in_o divulge_v and_o publish_v the_o gospel_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o spend_v their_o time_n in_o salutation_n v._o 48._o be_v you_o therefore_o perfect_a as_o your_o father_n in_o heaven_n be_v perfect_a in_o the_o word_n 1_o a_o duty_n be_v perfect_a 2_o the_o pattern_n of_o this_o duty_n as_o your_o
6.6_o psal_n 31.22_o jonah_n when_o in_o the_o whale_n belly_n jon._n 27._o 3_o the_o great_a refuge_n saint_n have_v herein_o manasses_n when_o in_o chain_n 2_o chron._n 33.11_o 12._o thus_o seek_v god_n paul_n 2_o cor._n 12.8_o esther_n and_o her_o maiden_n when_o the_o jew_n be_v design_v to_o destruction_n when_o a_o child_n of_o god_n be_v overtake_v with_o some_o sin_n or_o in_o distress_n he_o will_v not_o for_o a_o world_n want_v this_o peter_n mar._n 14.72_o when_o esau_n come_v against_o jacob_n this_o be_v jacob_n refuge_n gen._n 32.9_o 4_o our_o own_o personal_a want_n wherein_o perhaps_o not_o one_o in_o the_o church_n or_o family_n be_v in_o our_o case_n only_o in_o secret_a prayer_n take_v heed_n of_o hypocrisy_n that_o thy_o voice_n may_v not_o if_o possible_a be_v hear_v of_o other_o nor_o thy_o melt_n and_o weep_n perceive_v by_o other_o also_o of_o customariness_n come_v out_o of_o sense_n of_o thy_o want_n else_o if_o thou_o keep_v thy_o hour_n thou_o will_v perform_v prayer_n either_o with_o listlesness_n or_o slightness_n also_o take_v heed_n of_o profaneness_n to_o put_v off_o secret_a prayer_n till_o thou_o be_v move_v by_o the_o spirit_n by_o this_o delusion_n some_o have_v not_o pray_v alone_o for_o some_o month_n it_o be_v a_o fit_a season_n to_o pray_v when_o the_o spirit_n move_v but_o not_o the_o only_a season_n father_n which_o be_v in_o secret_a here_o be_v the_o object_n of_o our_o prayer_n viz._n god_n as_o a_o father_n who_o be_v a_o father_n 1_o by_o creation_n hence_o call_v the_o father_n of_o spirit_n heb._n 12.9_o 2_o by_o regeneration_n 1_o peter_n 1.3_o who_o have_v beget_v we_o again_o to_o a_o lively_a hope_n which_o also_o be_v call_v adoption_n gal._n 4.6_o hence_o 1_o call_v upon_o this_o father_n one_o of_o the_o first_o thing_n in_o nature_n be_v for_o a_o child_n to_o call_v father_n so_o it_o shall_v be_v the_o first_o thing_n in_o grace_n matth._n 7.9_o 2_o honour_n this_o father_n mal._n 1.6_o if_o i_o be_v a_o father_n where_o be_v my_o honour_n and_o live_v so_o that_o other_o may_v honour_v he_o matth._n 5.16_o 3_o imitate_v your_o father_n as_o child_n do_v their_o father_n in_o love_n ephes_n 5.1_o 2._o in_o do_v good_a to_o enemy_n matth_n 5.44_o in_o holiness_n 1_o peter_n 1.14_o 4_o patient_o bear_v his_o correction_n heb._n 12.5_o 6_o 7_o 8._o 5_o sort_v ourselves_o with_o god_n child_n 2_o cor._n 6.14_o 2_o comfort_n to_o christian_n in_o sundry_a respect_n as_o 1_o that_o god_n will_v bear_v a_o tender_a respect_n to_o we_o in_o all_o trouble_n as_o a_o father_n love_v his_o child_n as_o well_o when_o sick_a as_o well_o nay_o he_o be_v then_o more_o affectionate_o tender_a to_o he_o the_o father_n than_o set_v the_o whole_a house_n a_o work_n for_o his_o recovery_n some_o go_n for_o physician_n other_o for_o friend_n other_o tend_v of_o he_o so_o when_o soul_n be_v sick_a god_n set_v christian_n to_o pray_v for_o they_o preacher_n to_o comfort_v they_o yea_o suppose_v thou_o have_v break_v some_o resolution_n and_o be_v overtake_v yet_o what_o father_n will_v take_v the_o forfeiture_n of_o a_o bond_n of_o his_o son_n especial_o when_o he_o forfeit_v it_o against_o his_o will_n much_o less_o will_v god_n who_o be_v infinite_o more_o a_o father_n to_o his_o child_n 2_o in_o desertion_n a_o father_n solace_v himself_o with_o a_o child_n step_v aside_o into_o a_o corner_n that_o the_o child_n may_v dear_o prize_v the_o father_n presence_n so_o our_o heavenly_a father_n by_o restraint_n of_o his_o influence_n in_o shine_v upon_o we_o inflame_v our_o love_n towards_o he_o 3_o in_o respect_n of_o sustentation_n in_o trouble_n a_o father_n set_v his_o child_n upon_o its_o foot_n to_o try_v whether_o its_o able_a to_o stand_v alone_o but_o withal_o he_o hold_v his_o arm_n on_o both_o side_n to_o hold_v it_o up_o if_o it_o incline_v either_o way_n so_o do_v our_o heavenly_a father_n 4_o in_o respect_n of_o provision_n the_o child_n take_v not_o care_n what_o it_o shall_v eat_v or_o wear_v so_o shall_v saint_n cast_v all_o their_o care_n on_o their_o father_n 1_o peter_z 5.7_o your_o heavenly_a father_n know_v you_o have_v need_n of_o these_o thing_n matth._n 6.32_o 5_o against_o total_a fall_v away_o a_o father_n will_v not_o cast_v off_o a_o fatherly_a affection_n to_o his_o son_n how_o hard_o it_o be_v for_o a_o father_n to_o cast_v off_o a_o rebellious_a son_n we_o see_v in_o david_n to_o absalon_n 2_o sam._n 10.5_o hosea_n 11.8_o luke_n 15.18_o much_o less_o will_v god_n cast_v off_o his_o child_n who_o desire_v to_o please_v he_o mal._n 3.17_o i_o will_v spare_v he_o as_o a_o man_n spare_v his_o own_o son_n 6_o in_o respect_n of_o our_o bold_a access_n if_o it_o be_v a_o privilege_n to_o come_v into_o a_o prince_n presence-chamber_n what_o be_v it_o to_o come_v into_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n a_o child_n come_v bold_o to_o his_o father_n though_o stranger_n and_o servant_n keep_v a_o distance_n heb._n 4.16_o 7_o in_o respect_n of_o imperfection_n a_o father_n call_v two_o of_o his_o child_n one_o of_o three_o year_n old_a the_o other_o of_o thirteen_o they_o both_o make_v all_o the_o haste_n they_o can_v and_o though_o the_o elder_a outgo_v the_o young_a and_z come_v first_o yet_o the_o young_a come_v wadle_a as_o fast_a as_o he_o can_v the_o father_n accept_v of_o the_o endeavour_n of_o the_o young_a as_o well_v as_o of_o the_o fast_o go_v of_o the_o elder_a so_o do_v our_o heavenly_a father_n 8._o in_o case_n of_o disinherit_n because_o we_o will_v not_o touch_v this_o or_o that_o unclean_a thing_n our_o parent_n cast_v we_o off_o well_o say_v god_n in_o this_o case_n i_o will_v be_v your_o father_n and_o you_o shall_v be_v my_o son_n and_o daughter_n 2_o cor._n 6.17_o 3_o exhortation_n to_o perform_v reverence_n mal._n 1.6_o and_o obedience_n jer._n 35.16_o and_o confidence_n thy_o father_n which_o see_v in_o secret_n shall_v reward_v thou_o open_o christ_n stir_v up_o the_o faith_n of_o his_o petitioner_n by_o a_o twofold_a argument_n 1_o from_o the_o omnipresence_n of_o god_n wheresoever_o we_o be_v even_o in_o the_o most_o secret_a closet_n god_n be_v there_o present_a hear_v prayer_n 2_o from_o the_o goodness_n and_o mercy_n of_o god_n who_o will_v not_o suffer_v such_o prayer_n to_o be_v in_o vain_a but_o will_v grant_v the_o thing_n at_o present_a want_v and_o hereafter_o shall_v give_v a_o reward_n open_o only_o know_v its_o a_o reward_n of_o grace_n not_o of_o debt_n for_o what_o desert_n can_v a_o beggar_n allege_v v._o 7._o but_o when_o you_o pray_v use_v not_o vain_a repetition_n as_o the_o heathen_a do_v for_o they_o think_v they_o shall_v be_v hear_v for_o their_o much_o speak_n christ_n come_v to_o show_v the_o three_o sin_n of_o the_o pharisee_n which_o be_v vain_a repetition_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d do_v not_o speak_v vain_a thing_n as_o montanus_n translate_v it_o or_o speak_v not_o much_o as_o erasmus_n the_o word_n be_v derive_v of_o battus_n a_o poet_n who_o be_v a_o egregious_a babbler_n as_o the_o heathen_n think_v they_o shall_v be_v hear_v for_o their_o much_o speak_n so_o do_v these_o pharisee_n as_o rhetorician_n by_o their_o flaunt_a style_n think_v to_o move_v the_o judge_n to_o acquit_v the_o guilty_a so_o do_v these_o yet_o do_v not_o christ_n condemn_v a_o frequency_n and_o continuance_n in_o prayer_n but_o he_o show_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n be_v not_o obtain_v by_o the_o vain_a flow_v of_o many_o word_n but_o the_o sigh_n and_o groan_n of_o the_o heart_n be_v the_o arrow_n that_o pierce_v heaven_n quest_n whether_o be_v all_o repetition_n in_o prayer_n vain_a answ_n no._n solomon_n often_o use_v they_o 1_o king_n 8.30_o 39_o 43._o hear_v thou_o in_o heaven_n thy_o dwell_a place_n nehemiah_n use_v repetition_n nehemiah_n 1.6_o 7._o and_o so_o do_v daniel_n cap._n 9.5_o we_o have_v sin_v we_o have_v committediniquity_n and_o do_v wicked_o repetition_n be_v lawful_a 1_o when_o they_o come_v from_o pinch_a necessity_n so_o christ_n cry_v my_o god_n my_o god_n and_o three_o time_n utter_v the_o same_o word_n matth._n 26.39_o 42_o 44._o 2_o when_o they_o come_v from_o holy_a affection_n psalm_n 72.19_o let_v the_o whole_a earth_n be_v fill_v with_o his_o glory_n amen_o and_o amen_o repetition_n in_o prayer_n be_v sometime_o echo_v of_o strong_a cry_n of_o the_o spirit_n bless_a be_v his_o holy_a name_n for_o evermore_o amen_o and_o amen_o psalm_n 89.50_o 51._o so_o abba_n father_n mark_v 14.36_o 1_o king_n 18.39_o the_o lord_n he_o be_v god_n the_o lord_n he_o be_v god_n 3_o when_o they_o come_v from_o love_n as_o holy_a holy_a holy_a isai_n 6.3_o rev._n 4.8_o 4_o when_o use_v though_o the_o second_o time_n yet_o they_o
1_o peter_n 2.5_o and_o angel_n be_v call_v holy_a mark_v 8.38_o but_o there_o be_v none_o holy_a as_o the_o lord_n 1_o sam._n 2.2_o saint_n and_o angel_n be_v holy_a with_o a_o derivative_a holiness_n but_o in_o god_n it_o be_v essential_a holiness_n in_o the_o creature_n be_v a_o quality_n in_o god_n it_o be_v his_o be_v and_o nature_n in_o the_o creature_n it_o be_v finite_a and_o in_o such_o a_o measure_n in_o god_n it_o be_v infinite_a and_o without_o measure_n be_v then_o so_o infinite_o and_o essential_o holy_a let_v we_o sanctify_v his_o name_n by_o 1_o acknowledge_v he_o to_o be_v the_o true_a god_n psal_n 103.1_o the_o god_n of_o the_o heathen_a be_v impure_a lecher_n 2_o by_o be_v abase_v when_o thou_o come_v into_o his_o presence_n after_o job_n eye_n have_v see_v god_n he_o abhor_v himself_o in_o dust_n and_o ash_n job_n 42.5.6_o peter_n out_o of_o the_o apprehension_n of_o that_o great_a vileness_n in_o himself_o and_o holiness_n in_o christ_n say_v depart_v from_o i_o for_o i_o be_o a_o sinful_a man_n o_o lord_n luke_n 5.8_o 3_o by_o extol_v and_o praise_v this_o holiness_n in_o god_n glorious_a in_o holiness_n and_o fearful_a in_o praise_n be_v join_v together_o exod._n 15.11_o psalm_n 30.4_o give_v thanks_o at_o the_o remembrance_n of_o his_o holiness_n without_o god_n holiness_n what_o be_v his_o wisdom_n but_o subtlety_n his_o will_v but_o wilfulness_n his_o power_n but_o oppression_n his_o love_v but_o dotage_n his_o justice_n but_o terror_n but_o his_o holiness_n declare_v the_o perfection_n of_o all_o his_o attribute_n 4_o by_o remove_v all_o causality_n of_o sin_n from_o god_n he_o can_v no_o more_o be_v a_o cause_n of_o sin_n than_o the_o sun_n of_o darkness_n shall_v not_o the_o judge_n of_o all_o the_o world_n do_v right_a gen._n 18.25_o god_n may_v will_v the_o be_v of_o sin_n but_o man_n the_o nature_n of_o it_o as_o in_o a_o chain_n that_o break_v none_o be_v in_o fault_n but_o that_o which_o break_v so_o in_o the_o concurrent_a cause_n of_o sio_fw-la none_o be_v to_o be_v fault_v but_o the_o immediate_a cause_n the_o will_n of_o man_n god_n withdraw_v his_o restraint_n which_o he_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o give_v corruption_n boil_v out_o and_o the_o creature_n sin_n necessary_o but_o voluntary_o he_o that_o drive_v a_o lame_a horse_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o his_o go_n not_o of_o his_o halt_n god_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o action_n of_o the_o sinner_n for_o in_o he_o we_o live_v and_o move_v act_v 17.28_o but_o not_o of_o the_o corrupt_a turn_n of_o the_o will_n 5_o by_o avoid_v all_o profanation_n of_o his_o holy_a name_n when_o a_o man_n and_o his_o father_n go_v in_o to_o the_o same_o maid_n they_o profane_a god_n holy_a name_n among_o the_o heathen_a amos_n 2.7_o so_o the_o babylonian_n see_v the_o unholy_a life_n of_o the_o jew_n cry_v these_o be_v the_o people_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o so_o god_n holy_a name_n be_v profane_v ezek._n 36.20_o a_o small_a impeachment_n to_o the_o name_n of_o a_o prince_n stir_v he_o up_o to_o arm_n and_o will_v not_o the_o prince_n of_o prince_n be_v jealous_a for_o his_o holy_a name_n see_v ezek._n 36_o 2d_o ezek._n 39.25_o give_v unto_o the_o lord_n the_o glory_n due_a unto_o his_o name_n psal_n 96.8_o 6_o by_o imitate_v god_n in_o holiness_n be_v you_o holy_a for_o i_o be_o holy_a 1_o pet._n 1.16_o as_o a_o little_a white_a be_v like_o a_o great_a white_a differ_v only_o in_o degree_n so_o let_v our_o holiness_n be_v like_o go_n be_v we_o not_o god_n temple_n wherein_o his_o spirit_n dwell_v and_o be_v not_o temple_n sever_v from_o common_a use_n be_v belshazzar_n so_o punish_v for_o abuse_v a_o material_a temple_n and_o shall_v thou_o escape_v if_o thou_o profane_v a_o spiritual_a temple_n the_o life_n and_o family_n of_o too_o many_o prove_v that_o they_o live_v the_o life_n of_o heathen_n under_o the_o name_n of_o christian_n some_o cry_n out_o as_o corah_n be_v not_o all_o the_o lord_n people_n holy_a numb_a 16.3_o other_o think_v there_o be_v none_o holy_a but_o glorify_a saint_n but_o there_o be_v a_o people_n who_o be_v call_v to_o holiness_n and_o who_o so_o walk_v make_v holiness_n their_o element_n wherein_o they_o live_v as_o the_o bird_n in_o the_o air_n and_o fish_n in_o the_o water_n hereunto_o be_v we_o elect_v that_o we_o shall_v be_v holy_a 2_o thess_n 2.13_o we_o can_v climb_v up_o into_o heaven_n to_o behold_v our_o election_n yet_o may_v we_o read_v it_o in_o our_o sanctification_n without_o holiness_n we_o can_v prove_v our_o justification_n see_v the_o water_n and_o spirit_n witness_v with_o we_o as_o well_o as_o the_o blood_n 1_o joh._n 5.8_o ere_o long_a heaven_n and_o earth_n will_v be_v on_o fire_n holiness_n at_o that_o time_n will_v be_v like_o pure_a gold_n which_o will_v not_o be_v consume_v by_o the_o fire_n 2_o pet._n 3.11_o 3_o god_n name_n be_v his_o attribute_n which_o name_n god_n proclaim_v exod._n 33.19_o compare_v with_o cap._n 34_o 6._o i_o will_v proclaim_v my_o name_n before_o thou_o and_o the_o lord_n pass_v by_o and_o proclaim_v the_o lord_n merciful_a gracious_a etc._n etc._n the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v every_o thing_n which_o be_v true_o affirm_v of_o he_o thou_o shall_v fear_v this_o glorious_a and_o fearful_a name_n the_o lord_n thy_o god_n deut._n 28.58_o to_o derogate_v from_o any_o attribute_n of_o god_n as_o to_o tax_v his_o justice_n to_o limit_v his_o power_n to_o question_v his_o faithfulness_n to_o ascribe_v that_o to_o fortune_n which_o be_v due_a to_o providence_n be_v a_o profane_v of_o the_o name_n of_o god_n 4_o god_n name_n be_v his_o ordinance_n mal._n 10.14_o as_o the_o word_n psal_n 138.4_o prayer_n act._n 9.14_o the_o supper_n 1_o cor._n 11.29_o there_o aught_o to_o be_v a_o discern_a of_o the_o lord_n body_n so_o baptism_n matth._n 28.19_o baptise_v they_o into_o the_o name_n of_o father_n son_n and_o spirit_n only_a god_n magnify_v his_o word_n above_o all_o his_o name_n psal_n 138.4_o 5_o god_n name_n be_v take_v for_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n and_o credit_n of_o religion_n rom._n 2._o ●4_n my_o name_n be_v blaspheme_v every_o day_n through_o you_o that_o be_v you_o jew_n who_o profess_v my_o name_n and_o live_v loose_o ezek._n 36._o ●0_n the_o loose_a jew_n in_o babylon_n profane_v god_n name_n when_o the_o heathen_n report_v these_o be_v the_o people_n of_o the_o lord_n esa_n 52.5_o hallow_a be_v thy_o name_n to_o hallow_v be_v take_v 1_o for_o the_o make_n of_o a_o person_n or_o thing_n that_o be_v unholy_a to_o become_v holy_a 1_o cor._n 6.10_o thus_o we_o can_v hallow_v god_n name_n 2_o for_o the_o declaration_n or_o for_o a_o appear_v to_o be_v holy_a so_o god_n will_v have_v his_o name_n appear_v to_o the_o whole_a world_n that_o he_o be_v a_o holy_a god_n not_o only_o by_o a_o reverend_a speak_n of_o his_o essence_n and_o attribute_n avoid_v all_o swear_n curse_a etc._n etc._n but_o also_o by_o a_o holy_a conversation_n thus_o we_o be_v to_o sanctify_v god_n in_o our_o heart_n 1_o pet._n 3.15_o and_o in_o our_o life_n 1_o pet._n 1.16_o be_v you_o holy_a for_o i_o be_o holy_a we_o by_o our_o holiness_n shall_v show_v forth_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n holiness_n that_o if_o there_o be_v so_o much_o holiness_n in_o poor_a saint_n how_o much_o be_v there_o in_o god_n 3_o for_o the_o publish_n of_o a_o thing_n to_o be_v holy_a so_o we_o be_v to_o publish_v the_o name_n of_o god_n to_o be_v holy_a ps_n 105.3.111_o 9_o holy_a and_o reverend_a be_v his_o name_n psal_n 30.4_o 4_o for_o the_o manifestation_n of_o god_n holiness_n in_o a_o way_n of_o judgement_n when_o sinner_n will_v not_o show_v forth_o his_o holiness_n in_o a_o way_n of_o practice_n so_o when_o god_n destroy_v nadab_n and_o abihu_n he_o say_v i_o will_v be_v sanctify_v in_o they_o that_o come_v nigh_o unto_o i_o levit._fw-la 10.3_o so_o god_n be_v sanctify_v in_o the_o destruction_n of_o zidon_n ezek._n 28.22_o so_o god_n will_v be_v sanctify_v of_o god_n in_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o heathen_a ezek._n 38.16_o 23._o thy_o kingdom_n come_v there_o be_v a_o twofold_a kingdom_n 1_o of_o grace_n 2_o of_o glory_n 1_o of_o grace_n this_o kingdom_n we_o desire_v may_v come_v 1_o by_o cast_v down_o the_o kingdom_n of_o satan_n in_o we_o 2_o cor._n 10.4_o 2_o by_o set_v up_o christ_n to_o reign_v in_o every_o one_o of_o our_o heart_n thus_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v say_v to_o be_v within_o we_o luk._n 17.21_o govern_v we_o by_o his_o word_n and_o spirit_n 3_o by_o stablish_v all_o mean_n towards_o the_o build_n up_o of_o this_o kingdom_n as_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o word_n which_o be_v call_v the_o gospel_n of_o the_o kingdom_n 4_o
that_o all_o hindrance_n that_o stand_v against_o this_o kingdom_n may_v be_v remove_v as_o sin_n etc._n etc._n rom._n 6.15_o sin_n shall_v not_o have_v dominion_n over_o you_o rom._n 6.12_o 5_o that_o those_o thing_n go_v before_o the_o glorious_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n may_v be_v fulfil_v as_o the_o fall_n of_o antichrist_n the_o conversion_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o the_o bring_n in_o of_o the_o fullness_n of_o the_o gentile_n 6_o that_o christ_n will_v gather_v preserve_v and_o increase_v his_o church_n and_o rule_v therein_o psal_n 2.6_o yet_o have_v i_o set_v my_o king_n upon_o my_o holy_a hill_n of_o zion_n 2_o there_o be_v a_o kingdom_n of_o glory_n we_o desire_v this_o may_v come_v this_o be_v 1_o temporary_a 2_o eternal_a 1_o temporary_a on_o earth_n 1_o by_o hasten_v and_o long_v for_o his_o final_a appearance_n 2_o tim._n 4.8_o that_o he_o may_v reign_v and_o all_o his_o saint_n with_o he_o zach._n 14.5_o the_o lord_n my_o god_n shall_v come_v and_o all_o the_o saint_n with_o thou_o concern_v which_o king_n doom_n observe_v 1_o the_o beginning_n of_o it_o which_o will_v begin_v at_o christ_n his_o second_o appearance_n to_o judge_v the_o world_n 2_o tim._n 4.1_o he_o shall_v the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a at_o his_o appearance_n and_o his_o kingdom_n 2_o for_o the_o end_n of_o this_o kingdom_n it_o shall_v be_v after_o the_o sum_n of_o a_o thousand_o year_n revel_v 20.4_o 5._o then_o come_v the_o end_n when_o he_o shall_v have_v deliver_v up_o the_o kingdom_n to_o the_o father_n 1_o cor._n 15.24_o and_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v after_o the_o second_o resurrection_n for_o it_o be_v bound_v with_o two_o resurrection_n the_o first_o resurrection_n be_v the_o beginning_n thereof_o and_o the_o second_o the_o conclusion_n thereof_o revel_v 20.5_o for_o than_o it_o shall_v be_v deliver_v up_o 1_o cor._n 15.24_o 3_o the_o gloriousness_n of_o this_o kingdom_n set_v down_o 1_o by_o similitude_n of_o glister_a stone_n saphire_n and_o carbuncle_n esai_n 54.11_o street_n of_o pure_a gold_n revel_v 21.18_o of_o a_o bride_n trim_v for_o her_o husband_n rev._n 21.8_o for_o that_o be_v mean_v of_o a_o king_n o●●e_n on_o earth_n because_o this_o descend_v out_o of_o heaven_n this_o bride_n shall_v have_v her_o wedding_n garment_n on_o rev._n 19.8_o all_o that_o be_v call_v to_o this_o marriage_n be_v bless_v revel_v 19.9_o rev._n 21_o 5_o 6._o 2_o by_o clear_a scripture_n peruse_v esai_n 11._o esai_n 30.26_o esai_n 54.11_o to_o the_o end_n esai_n 60._o throughout_o zach._n cap._n 13_o 14._o rev._n 20._o also_o cap._n 21._o 3_o the_o excellent_a thing_n therein_o as_o 1_o the_o restitution_n of_o all_o thing_n in_o order_n as_o at_o the_o begin_n before_o the_o fall_n act_v 3.21_o who_o the_o heaven_n must_v contain_v till_o the_o time_n of_o the_o restitution_n of_o all_o thing_n rom._n 8.19_o 20_o 21_o 22._o wait_v for_o manifestation_n in_o heaven_n glory_n be_v hide_v from_o creature_n but_o the_o creature_n shall_v be_v restore_v from_o vanity_n bring_v on_o they_o by_o man_n corruption_n to_o serve_v man_n in_o perfection_n the_o creature_n and_o saint_n be_v distinguish_v v._o 22_o 23._o 2_o the_o subject_n of_o this_o kingdom_n shall_v all_o be_v holy_a not_o only_o professional_o but_o real_o esai_n 35.8.60.21_o zach._n 14.20_o 21._o rev._n 21.27_o dan._n 7.27_o the_o kingdom_n and_o dominion_n and_o the_o greatness_n of_o the_o kingdom_n under_o the_o whole_a heaven_n shall_v be_v give_v to_o the_o people_n of_o the_o saint_n of_o the_o most_o high_a 3_o the_o exaltation_n of_o these_o subject_n throne_n shall_v be_v place_v dan._n 7.9_o 10._o and_o the_o saint_n shall_v sit_v on_o they_o compare_v with_o rev._n 20.4_o matth._n 19.28_o they_o that_o have_v follow_v i_o in_o the_o regeneration_n when_o the_o son_n of_o man_n shall_v sit_v upon_o his_o throne_n they_o also_o shall_v sit_v upon_o throne_n 2_o judgement_n shall_v be_v give_v to_o they_o dan._n 7.22_o compare_v with_o rev._n 20.4_o 1_o cor._n 6.2_o 3_o the_o saint_n possess_v the_o kingdom_n dan._n 7.22_o or_o as_o in_o the_o revelation_n cap._n 20.4_o the_o saint_n reign_v with_o christ_n a_o thousand_o year_n 4_o the_o place_n of_o this_o kingdom_n it_o be_v this_o world_n that_o now_o be_v former_o divide_v into_o many_o kingdom_n shall_v upon_o the_o sound_n of_o the_o seven_o trumpet_n become_v the_o kingdom_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o of_o his_o christ_n rev._n 11.15_o and_o this_o be_v just_a when_o the_o time_n of_o the_o dead_a be_v come_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v judge_v v._o 18._o he_o speak_v not_o they_o shall_v be_v christ_n in_o respect_n of_o his_o deity_n for_o so_o they_o be_v always_o he_o but_o in_o respect_n of_o his_o manhood_n also_o rev._n 5.10_o 5_o from_o the_o length_n it_o shall_v continue_v a_o thousand_o year_n they_o live_v and_o reign_v with_o christ_n a_o thousand_o year_n rev._n 20.4_o the_o life_n of_o regeneration_n can_v here_o be_v mean_v for_o here_o 1_o they_o all_o begin_v to_o reign_v at_o once_o not_o so_o in_o regeneration_n 2_o the_o reign_n of_o regenerate_a person_n in_o heaven_n be_v for_o eternity_n this_o be_v only_o for_o a_o thousand_o year_n and_o that_o upon_o earth_n 6_o from_o the_o quietness_n and_o peace_n that_o shall_v be_v in_o this_o kingdom_n as_o 1_o satan_n bind_v up_o rev._n 20.1_o 2_o 3._o for_o the_o space_n of_o this_o thousand_o year_n 2_o a_o general_a peace_n over_o the_o world_n that_o they_o shall_v beat_v their_o sword_n into_o ploughshare_n and_o spear_n into_o prune_a hook_n esai_n 2.3_o mic._n 4.2_o 3_o antipathy_n take_v away_o the_o wolf_n shall_v dwell_v with_o the_o lamb_n and_o the_o leopard_n shall_v lie_v down_o with_o the_o kid_n esai_n 11.6_o none_o of_o these_o ever_o be_v fulfil_v 4_o antichrist_n throw_v down_o and_o destroy_v 2_o thes_n 2.8_o 5_o universal_a peace_n ps_n 72.3_o 7._o esai_n 65.25_o 7_o a_o put_v down_o of_o all_o rule_n authority_n and_o power_n in_o the_o empire_n and_o government_n of_o the_o world_n 1_o cor._n 15.24_o subject_v all_o enemy_n v._o 25._o see_v dan._n 7.14_o 8_o from_o the_o victory_n that_o christ_n shall_v have_v in_o this_o kingdom_n 1_o at_o the_o battle_n of_o armagedon_n rev._n 16.16_o when_v the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n be_v gather_v together_o from_o all_o part_n and_o be_v conjoin_v therein_o before_o they_o can_v make_v their_o general_a randezvouse_n christ_n make_v his_o appearance_n and_o slay_v many_o of_o they_o esa_n 66.16_o joel_n 3.14_o rev._n 19.21_o in_o this_o battle_n be_v not_o only_o the_o remainder_n of_o the_o papacy_n but_o even_o turk_n and_o idolater_n 2_o at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o thousand_o year_n satan_n be_v let_v loose_a to_o deceive_v the_o nation_n gather_v gog_n and_o magog_n a_o innumerable_a company_n to_o battle_n who_o design_n will_v be_v to_o compass_v the_o camp_n of_o the_o saint_n about_o and_o the_o belove_a city_n and_o fire_n come_v down_o from_o heaven_n and_o devour_v they_o rev._n 20.7_o 8_o 9_o and_o the_o devil_n that_o deceive_v they_o be_v cast_v into_o hell_n ver_fw-la 10._o upon_o which_o follow_v the_o judgement_n of_o small_a and_o great_a see_v ver_fw-la 12.13_o 14._o 2_o there_o be_v a_o eternal_a kingdom_n of_o glory_n 1_o pet._n 1.3_o 4_o 5._o when_o after_o the_o saint_n reign_v and_o expiration_n of_o these_o thousand_o year_n and_o after_o the_o delivery_n of_o this_o kingdom_n into_o the_o father_n hand_n by_o christ_n as_o mediator_n 1_o cor._n 15.24_o god_n shall_v be_v all_o in_o all_o ver_fw-la 28._o christ_n as_o mediator_n administer_v this_o kingdom_n now_o as_o viceroy_n or_o deputy_n prince_n give_v up_o their_o power_n to_o emperor_n or_o king_n that_o send_v they_o so_o at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o thousand_o year_n shall_v christ_n give_v up_o this_o kingdom_n to_o the_o father_n that_o be_v essential_o consider_v and_o then_o 1_o the_o son_n himself_o shall_v be_v subject_a unto_o he_o that_o put_v all_o thing_n under_o he_o 1_o cor._n 15.28_o that_o be_v the_o humane_a nature_n of_o christ_n shall_v be_v a_o glorious_a creature_n in_o the_o behold_v whereof_o part_n of_o our_o glory_n will_v consist_v 2_o then_o god_n will_v be_v all_o in_o all_o 1_o cor._n 15.28_o all_o thing_n shall_v be_v full_a of_o god_n the_o saint_n shall_v be_v as_o it_o be_v unite_v unto_o god_n as_o the_o beam_n of_o the_o sun_n to_o the_o body_n of_o the_o sun_n in_o the_o glorious_a aspect_n of_o he_o god_n will_v be_v all_o in_o all_o by_o be_v instead_o of_o all_o thing_n to_o the_o saint_n as_o life_n glory_n honour_n peace_n plenty_n yea_o the_o very_a wish_n or_o rather_o satiety_n and_o satisfaction_n of_o all_o our_o desire_n now_o god_n be_v not_o all_o in_o all_o but_o part_n in_o every_o one_o for_o example_n
some_o man_n be_v hard_a to_o please_v that_o do_v what_o you_o can_v you_o can_v never_o content_v they_o they_o be_v so_o humorous_a but_o it_o be_v not_o so_o with_o god_n if_o there_o be_v a_o willing_a mind_n and_o a_o holy_a sincere_a endeavour_n god_n accept_v it_o 2_o cor._n 8.12_o if_o god_n shall_v require_v obedience_n in_o rigour_n we_o can_v not_o please_v he_o psal_n 130.3_o but_o he_o require_v obedience_n on_o easy_a term_n even_o gospel_n obedience_n and_o if_o there_o be_v some_o slip_v the_o lord_n will_v be_v well_o please_v for_o his_o righteousness_n sake_n esai_n 42.21_o matth._n 17.5_o 6_o it_o be_v a_o duty_n suitable_a to_o our_o conscience_n for_o when_o we_o do_v the_o will_n of_o god_n how_o do_v conscience_n approve_v of_o it_o and_o how_o do_v the_o conscience_n fill_v we_o with_o comfort_n herein_o 2_o cor._n 1.12_o when_o paul_n conscience_n witness_v that_o he_o endeavour_v in_o godly_a sincerity_n to_o do_v god_n will_v it_o fill_v his_o soul_n with_o rejoice_v 7_o no_o formal_a profession_n be_v regard_v of_o god_n how_o glorious_a soever_o unless_o we_o do_v god_n will_v matth._n 7.21_o not_o every_o one_o that_o say_v lord_n lord_n but_o he_o that_o do_v the_o will_n of_o my_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n mat._n 21.29_o 31._o the_o father_n there_o have_v two_o son_n one_o say_v he_o will_v go_v work_n in_o the_o vineyard_n and_o do_v not_o the_o other_o say_v he_o will_v not_o and_o yet_o do_v and_o he_o be_v say_v to_o do_v the_o will_n of_o god_n hence_o christ_n say_v whosoever_o do_v the_o will_n of_o my_o father_n the_o same_o be_v my_o father_n and_o mother_n sister_n and_o brother_n mark_v 3.35_o 8_o it_o be_v a_o everlasting_a duty_n when_o we_o come_v in_o heaven_n we_o must_v still_o be_v do_v the_o will_n of_o god_n let_v we_o begin_v it_o then_o on_o earth_n some_o duty_n cease_v when_o we_o die_v as_o prayer_n repentance_n mortification_n but_o this_o duty_n still_o continue_v for_o ever_o ps_n 19.9_o pray_v we_o that_o god_n will_v grant_v we_o his_o grace_n not_o as_o to_o the_o wicked_a to_o do_v his_o will_n in_o be_v unwilling_a to_o do_v it_o but_o as_o to_o his_o child_n at_o leastwise_o to_o be_v willing_a to_o do_v it_o even_o in_o not_o do_v it_o du_n bless_v c._n 13._o of_o christ_n relig._n 9_o this_o be_v the_o way_n to_o be_v establish_v in_o conscience_n what_o be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n when_o we_o inure_v ourselves_o to_o do_v it_o john_n 7.17_o whereas_o other_o be_v waver_v and_o uncertain_a 10_o it_o have_v be_v the_o commendation_n o●_n christian_n that_o they_o have_v do_v the_o will_n of_o god_n it_o be_v enech_n praise_n that_o he_o please_v god_n heb._n 11.5_o it_o be_v the_o praise_n of_o zachary_n and_o elizabeth_n luk._n 1.6_o they_o walk_v in_o all_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n blameless_a for_o this_o epaphras_n pray_v that_o the_o celossian_n may_v stand_v perfect_a in_o all_o the_o will_n of_o god_n col._n 4.12_o 11_o to_o do_v god_n will_v be_v the_o way_n to_o have_v our_o own_o will_n bring_v your_o will_n to_o god_n and_o so_o you_o shall_v always_o have_v your_o will_n because_o wicked_a man_n will_v not_o bring_v their_o will_n to_o god_n they_o shall_v eternal_o suffer_v that_o they_o will_v not_o in_o earth_n as_o it_o be_v in_o heaven_n though_o it_o may_v be_v interpret_v of_o the_o course_n of_o the_o star_n that_o in_o a_o continual_a motion_n obey_v god_n yet_o christ_n mean_v it_o of_o the_o angel_n psal_n 10_o ●_o 22_o 21_o praise_v he_o all_o his_o host_n you_o minister_n of_o he_o that_o do_v his_o pleasure_n we_o need_v not_o be_v ashamed_a of_o do_v that_o our_o better_n will_v do_v herein_o we_o desire_v that_o we_o may_v serve_v the_o lord_n on_o earth_n as_o the_o angel_n in_o heaven_n serve_v he_o they_o do_v his_o will_v 1_o universal_o 2_o out_o of_o love_n 3_o with_o cheerfulness_n 4_o perpetual_o so_o ought_v we_o this_o be_v to_o converse_v in_o heaven_n or_o to_o dwell_v in_o heaven_n to_o be_v like_o the_o angel_n of_o heaven_n 5_o speedy_o as_o in_o the_o angel_n send_v to_o destroy_v sennacherib_n host_n and_o the_o seventy_o thousand_o in_o david_n time_n and_o young_a and_o old_a in_o ezekiel_n time_n cap._n 9.4_o 6_o faithful_o the_o angel_n tell_v the_o lord_n i_o have_v do_v as_o thou_o have_v command_v i_o ezek._n 11_o 9_o we_o shall_v endeavour_v to_o be_v ●●ke_v they_o not_o that_o we_o can_v attain_v such_o perfection_n but_o that_o we_o shall_v follow_v after_o without_o set_v any_o measure_n or_o sc●●●●ings_n to_o our_o holiness_n in_o order_n to_o which_o pattern_n of_o holiness_n let_v we_o not_o only_o look_v upon_o the_o angel_n who_o be_v ready_a to_o serve_v we_o because_o the_o lord_n bi●s_v they_o for_o they_o all_o be_v minister_a spirit_n heb._n 1.14_o but_o we_o must_v use_v all_o mean_n whereby_o we_o may_v more_o and_o more_o come_v to_o such_o a_o end_n which_o be_v the_o lead_n of_o the_o spirit_n rom._n 8.14_o and_o the_o guidance_n of_o the_o word_n and_o frequent_a prayer_n 2_o cor._n 10.5_o from_o all_o this_o four_o inference_n 1_o that_o not_o only_a angel_n but_o man_n ought_v to_o take_v notice_n of_o god_n will_n god_n ought_v not_o only_o to_o rule_v in_o heaven_n but_o in_o the_o world_n 2_o to_o mourn_v under_o our_o natural_a rebellion_n and_o long_o that_o god_n will_v heal_v it_o rom._n 7.15_o 16_o 17_o 23._o 3_o pray_v to_o know_v the_o whole_a will_n of_o god_n psal_n 143.10_o teach_v i_o to_o do_v thy_o will_n o_o god_n and_o that_o god_n will_v incline_v your_o heart_n to_o do_v it_o it_o be_v solomon_n prayer_n 1_o kin._n 8.58_o that_o god_n will_v incline_v the_o people_n heart_n to_o walk_v in_o all_o his_o way_n 4_o that_o it_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o do_v god_n will_v but_o we_o must_v do_v it_o like_o angel_n we_o must_v do_v god_n will_v by_o be_v humble_a in_o conversation_n steadfast_a in_o faith_n gracious_a in_o word_n righteous_a in_o deed_n exemplary_a in_o manner_n live_v peaceable_o with_o brethren_n endure_v the_o wrong_n of_o enemy_n and_o not_o retaliate_v to_o love_n god_n sovereign_o and_o dear_o to_o awe_v he_o reverent_o yea_o we_o must_v do_v it_o as_o angel_n with_o a_o as_o of_o simitude_n though_o not_o of_o proportion_n give_v we_o this_o day_n our_o daily_a bread_n now_o we_o come_v to_o ask_v thing_n which_o concern_v ourselves_o this_o petition_n show_v 1_o that_o we_o must_v have_v a_o continual_a dependence_n upon_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n for_o earthly_a thing_n psal_n 145.15_o 16_o the_o eye_n of_o all_o wait_n on_o thou_o and_o thou_o give_v they_o their_o meat_n in_o due_a season_n as_o the_o israelite_n have_v for_o manna_n 2_o that_o we_o be_v only_o to_o pray_v for_o necessity_n not_o for_o superfluity_n to_o pray_v for_o silk_n garment_n gold_z rings_z and_o jewel_n etc._n etc._n we_o have_v no_o command_n but_o only_o for_o bread_n and_o clothes_n 1_o tim._n 6.8_o have_v food_n and_o raiment_n be_v content_a but_o if_o god_n make_v our_o cup_n run_v over_o we_o owe_v more_o to_o god_n and_o his_o people_n the_o more_o we_o receive_v prov._n 8.9_o feed_v i_o with_o food_n convenient_a for_o i_o therefore_o some_o translation_n render_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d agree_v to_o our_o substance_n or_o the_o bread_n of_o want_n jacob_n desire_a food_n to_o eat_v and_o raiment_n to_o put_v on_o gen._n 28.20_o 3_o christ_n will_v caution_n we_o herein_o against_o a_o cark_n solicitude_n for_o to_o morrow_n matth._n 6._o ult_n yet_o may_v there_o be_v a_o lawful_a care_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d come_v of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o signify_v the_o follow_a day_n day_n after_o and_o under_o day_n be_v not_o mean_v only_o one_o day_n but_o after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o hebrew_n the_o time_n of_o our_o life_n to_o come_v so_o that_o christ_n will_v have_v we_o to_o commit_v the_o care_n to_o god_n that_o so_o long_o as_o life_n last_v he_o will_v give_v we_o nourishment_n christ_n herein_o will_v remove_v from_o we_o as_o distrustfulness_n as_o not_o to_o doubt_v of_o god_n care_n of_o we_o so_o greediness_n whereby_o some_o pretend_v the_o expectation_n of_o old_a age_n for_o their_o covetousness_n so_o that_o christ_n mean_v give_v i_o sufficient_a for_o all_o my_o life_n follow_v if_o thou_o please_v not_o to_o give_v yearly_a give_v monthly_o if_o not_o monthly_o give_v daily_a bread_n and_o what_o ever_o thou_o give_v more_o come_v in_o over_o and_o above_o 4_o under_o bread_n be_v mean_v health_n peace_n and_o all_o temporal_a blessing_n gen._n 3.19_o 2_o king_n 6.22_o job_n 42.11_o house_n strength_n 5_o it_o show_v all_o
verse_n he_o show_v who_o the_o person_n to_o be_v reprove_v must_v be_v not_o dog_n nor_o hog_n but_o such_o as_o will_v receive_v a_o admonition_n q._n how_o may_v we_o give_v admonition_n that_o they_o may_v be_v receive_v a._n something_o must_v be_v do_v by_o the_o reprover_n something_o by_o the_o reprove_v 1_o the_o reprover_n must_v reprove_v in_o love_n it_o be_v horrible_a wickedness_n if_o any_o shall_v cover_v hatred_n or_o revenge_n under_o such_o a_o duty_n 1_o thes_n 2.11_o 12._o we_o charge_v you_o as_o a_o father_n do_v his_o child_n that_o you_o will_v walk_v worthy_a of_o god_n never_o set_v upon_o reproof_n unless_o your_o conscience_n tell_v you_o you_o do_v it_o out_o of_o love_n 2_o be_v sure_a there_o be_v a_o fault_n commit_v if_o you_o take_v up_o groundless_a report_n you_o yourself_o will_v come_v under_o reproof_n 1_o cor._n 1.11_o 12._o 1_o cor._n 5.1_o 3_o let_v reproof_n be_v apply_v to_o the_o quality_n of_o the_o person_n reprove_v if_o a_o inferior_a more_o bold_o if_o a_o superior_a more_o modest_o so_o nathan_n to_o david_n 1_o tim._n 5.1_o and_o to_o the_o quantity_n or_o quality_n of_o the_o sin_n tit._n 1.13_o rebuke_v they_o sharp_o if_o a_o person_n be_v so_o high_a that_o because_o of_o his_o greatness_n he_o will_v not_o be_v reprove_v he_o be_v to_o be_v reprove_v because_o he_o will_v not_o be_v reprove_v 4_o with_o observation_n of_o fit_a time_n and_o place_n so_o abigail_n to_o nabal_n when_o the_o drink_n be_v out_o of_o his_o head_n 1_o sam._n 25.36_o 37._o prov._n 25.11_o 5_o with_o zeal_n that_o so_o the_o sinner_n may_v see_v his_o sin_n and_o god_n wrath_n due_a for_o it_o not_o as_o eli_n to_o his_o son_n but_o as_o john_n baptist_n matth._n 3.7_o 8_o 9_o matth._n 14.4_o 6_o with_o meekness_n consider_v thyself_o may_v be_v tempt_v gal._n 6.1_o 7_o to_o give_v it_o to_o a_o person_n hopeful_a not_o incorrigible_a not_o a_o dog_n or_o hog_n prov_n 23.9_o 8_o with_o patience_n if_o a_o person_n be_v admonish_v and_o repent_v not_o yet_o wait_v a_o while_n if_o he_o still_o mend_v not_o take_v one_o or_o two_o that_o may_v be_v helpful_a either_o to_o bring_v he_o to_o repentance_n or_o to_o witness_v his_o stubbornness_n matth._n 18.15_o 2_o something_n must_v be_v do_v by_o the_o reprove_v as_o 1_o to_o pray_v for_o honest_a reprover_n psal_n 141.4_o 5._o let_v the_o righteous_a reprove_v i_o it_o shall_v be_v a_o excellent_a oil_n 2_o take_v the_o reproof_n with_o humility_n and_o patience_n and_o not_o to_o storm_n say_v as_o that_o israelite_n to_o moses_n who_o make_v thou_o a_o ruler_n and_o a_o judge_n over_o i_o exod._n 2.14_o 3_o judge_n that_o it_o come_v from_o love_n till_o the_o contrary_n appear_v and_o so_o it_o will_v be_v better_o digest_v we_o be_v not_o offend_v at_o he_o that_o show_v we_o the_o spot_n on_o our_o clothes_n why_o shall_v we_o be_v at_o he_o that_o show_v we_o the_o spot_n of_o our_o life_n 4_o amend_v by_o thy_o reproof_n whether_o it_o be_v a_o sin_n thou_o have_v be_v guilty_a of_o or_o a_o duty_n thou_o have_v fall_v short_a in_o if_o not_o guilty_a let_v it_o caution_n thou_o for_o time_n to_o come_v prov._n 9.9_o if_o thou_o after_o reproof_n amend_v not_o thou_o be_v near_a destruction_n prov._n 29.1_o motive_n 1._o he_o that_o rebuke_v a_o man_n shall_v find_v more_o favour_n afterward_o then_o he_o that_o flatter_v with_o his_o tongue_n prov._n 28.23_o else_o we_o be_v in_o danger_n to_o partake_v with_o other_o man_n sin_n eph._n 5.11_o v._o 7._o ask_v and_o it_o shall_v be_v give_v you_o seek_v and_o you_o shall_v find_v knock_v and_o it_o shall_v be_v open_v unto_o you_o v._o 8._o for_o every_o one_o that_o ask_v receive_v and_o he_o that_o seek_v find_v and_o to_o he_o that_o knock_v it_o shall_v be_v open_v in_o this_o command_n christ_n stir_v we_o up_o to_o prayer_n there_o be_v two_o thing_n that_o hinder_v prayer_n to_o wit_n sloth_n and_o unbelief_n against_o sloth_n christ_n bid_v we_o ask_v seek_v knock_v and_o against_o unbelief_n christ_n say_v whosoever_o ask_v receive_v and_o he_o that_o seek_v find_v and_o to_o he_o that_o knock_v it_o shall_v be_v open_v nothing_o more_o stir_v up_o a_o soul_n to_o prayer_n then_o a_o confidence_n of_o be_v hear_v and_o nothing_o make_v a_o man_n more_o heartless_a than_o the_o contrary_n now_o for_o the_o thing_n believer_n shall_v ask_v they_o be_v the_o spirit_n luk._n 11.13_o heavenly_a wisdom_n jam._n 1.5_o both_o which_o paul_n conjoyn_v and_o bid_v we_o pray_v for_o the_o spirit_n of_o wisdom_n eph._n 1.17_o 18._o also_o increase_v of_o grace_n these_o three_o ask_v seek_v and_o knock_v signify_v most_o fervent_a beg_n of_o god_n or_o a_o beg_n with_o perseverance_n they_o signify_v we_o shall_v pray_v believe_o diligent_o fervent_o and_o perseverant_o if_o man_n use_v to_o give_v be_v so_o importune_v how_o much_o more_o will_v god_n as_o christ_n show_v in_o the_o follow_a verse_n for_o every_o one_o that_o ask_v receive_v psal_n 81.7_o thou_o call_v in_o trouble_n and_o i_o deliver_v thou_o psal_n 50.15_o the_o word_n seem_v to_o be_v take_v out_o of_o jer._n 29.12_o 13._o then_o shall_v you_o call_v upon_o i_o and_o i_o will_v hearken_v unto_o you_o and_o you_o shall_v seek_v i_o and_o find_v i_o when_o you_o shall_v search_v for_o i_o with_o all_o your_o heart_n see_v luke_n 15.4_o this_o promise_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v that_o we_o ask_v according_a to_o the_o qualification_n before_o lay_v down_o as_o that_o we_o ask_v in_o faith_n &c_n &c_n use_v it_o be_v encouragement_n to_o we_o to_o come_v to_o god_n in_o all_o our_o want_n while_o they_o speak_v i_o will_v hear_v esa_n 65.24_o every_o believer_n may_v say_v of_o himself_o and_o other_o as_o moses_n say_v of_o the_o jew_n deut._n 4.7_o what_o nation_n be_v there_o that_o have_v god_n so_o nigh_o unto_o they_o as_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n be_v in_o all_o thing_n that_o we_o call_v unto_o he_o for_o only_o you_o must_v ask_v thing_n that_o god_n have_v promise_v or_o at_o least_o command_v we_o to_o ask_v for_o not_o hurtful_a thing_n as_o to_o ask_v riches_n to_o spend_v they_o upon_o our_o lust_n not_o curious_a thing_n the_o mother_n of_o zebedees_n son_n desire_v that_o her_o son_n may_v sit_v one_o at_o christ_n right_a hand_n the_o other_o at_o christ_n left_a hand_n in_o his_o kingdom_n be_v repulse_v 2_o exhort_v to_o patient_a wait_v if_o god_n answer_v not_o at_o first_o luke_n 18.1_o god_n long_o wait_v for_o we_o song_n 5.1_o revel_v 3.20_o v._o 9_o for_o what_o man_n be_v there_o among_o you_o which_o if_o his_o son_n ask_v he_o bread_n will_v give_v he_o a_o stone_n v._o 10_o or_o if_o he_o ask_v a_o fish_n will_v he_o give_v he_o a_o serpent_n v._o 11._o if_o you_o then_o that_o be_v evil_a know_v how_o to_o give_v good_a thing_n to_o your_o child_n how_o much_o more_o shall_v your_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n give_v good_a thing_n to_o they_o that_o ask_v he_o the_o word_n be_v a_o argument_n from_o the_o less_o to_o the_o great_a father_n though_o bad_a man_n will_v give_v good_a thing_n to_o their_o child_n much_o more_o will_v god_n be_v a_o good_a father_n give_v good_a thing_n to_o his_o child_n when_o they_o ask_v they_o of_o he_o mark_v christ_n argue_v only_o for_o give_v good_a thing_n to_o god_n child_n not_o to_o other_o to_o his_o child_n god_n will_v give_v and_o more_o liberal_o than_o man_n will_v to_o they_o when_o a_o son_n ask_v bread_n if_o the_o father_n shall_v give_v he_o a_o stone_n it_o will_v be_v unprofitable_a for_o he_o and_o if_o he_o shall_v ask_v fish_n and_o the_o father_n shall_v give_v he_o a_o serpent_n that_o be_v like_o a_o fish_n he_o will_v give_v he_o that_o which_o be_v hurtful_a and_o will_v poison_v he_o sure_o then_o god_n will_v not_o give_v his_o child_n those_o thing_n which_o be_v either_o unprofitable_a for_o they_o or_o hurtful_a unto_o they_o god_n in_o mercy_n sometime_o hear_v we_o not_o but_o deny_v we_o that_o which_o we_o ask_v that_o he_o may_v give_v we_o that_o which_o may_v do_v we_o more_o good_a if_o you_o be_v evil_a know_v how_o to_o give_v good_a thing_n the_o apostle_n and_o holy_a man_n be_v say_v to_o be_v evil_a 1_o comparative_o in_o respect_n of_o god_n job_n 15.14_o 15_o 16._o the_o heaven_n be_v not_o pure_a in_o his_o sight_n as_o the_o moon_n be_v dark_a in_o comparison_n of_o the_o sun_n or_o 2_o because_o of_o the_o unregenerate_a part_n remain_v in_o godly_a man_n rom._n 7.18_o i_o know_v that_o in_o my_o flesh_n dwell_v no_o good_a thing_n he_o do_v not_o mean_v his_o flesh_n
not_o that_o therefore_o the_o apostle_n exclude_v the_o teach_n of_o man_n for_o then_o why_o will_v christ_n send_v out_o his_o apostle_n and_o the_o seventy_o disciple_n and_o why_o do_v he_o establish_v a_o ministry_n in_o his_o church_n one_o essential_a property_n whereof_o be_v that_o he_o must_v be_v apt_a to_o teach_v yea_o do_v not_o christ_n bid_v we_o pray_v to_o the_o lord_n of_o the_o harvest_n for_o such_o labourer_n christ_n also_o show_v we_o that_o from_o the_o lord_n teach_v as_o a_o principal_a cause_n the_o ministry_n of_o man_n become_v effectual_a 1_o cor._n 3.7_o there_o be_v many_o other_o fruit_n of_o false_a prophet_n as_o the_o soothe_n and_o flatter_v of_o prince_n 1_o king_n 18.6_o compare_v with_o v._o 1●_n the_o mingle_n of_o truth_n and_o error_n together_o or_o at_o least_o truth_n and_o corrupt_a affection_n from_o which_o the_o apostle_n clear_v himself_o 2_o cor._n 2.17_o there_o be_v many_o other_o note_n of_o false_a prophet_n which_o by_o a_o frequent_a read_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o beg_v of_o the_o spirit_n we_o may_v attain_v to_o know_v v._o 16._o you_o shall_v know_v they_o by_o their_o fruit_n do_v man_n gather_v grape_n of_o thorn_n or_o fig_n of_o thistle_n look_v as_o of_o thorn-tree_n man_n do_v not_o gather_v grape_n nor_o of_o thistle_n man_n do_v not_o gather_v figgs_n so_o from_o false_a prophet_n there_o be_v no_o good_a and_o sweet_a fruit_n gather_v but_o the_o harsh_a and_o corrupt_a fruit_n of_o error_n and_o heresy_n v._o 17._o even_o so_o every_o good_a tree_n bring_v forth_o good_a fruit_n but_o a_o corrupt_a tree_n bring_v forth_o corrupt_a fruit._n christ_n here_o come_v to_o confirm_v unto_o we_o further_o that_o man_n do_v not_o gather_v good_a fruit_n from_o bad_a tree_n and_o make_v a_o reddition_n to_o the_o former_a proposition_n lay_v down_o interrogative_o by_o good_a and_o bad_a tree_n in_o general_a the_o state_n of_o the_o regenerate_a and_o unregenerate_a man_n may_v be_v understand_v matth._n 12.33_o carnal_a man_n can_v please_v god_n rom._n 8.8_o abel_n person_n be_v first_o respect_v than_o his_o offering_n gen._n 4.4_o in_o particular_a christ_n mean_v the_o prophet_n when_o good_a they_o bring_v forth_o good_a fruit_n when_o corrupt_a they_o bring_v forth_o corrupt_a fruit_n when_o good_a they_o handle_v the_o word_n of_o god_n upright_o 2_o cor._n 2.17.4.2_o when_o corrupt_a they_o handle_v god_n word_n deceitful_o ephes_n 4.14_o such_o false_a prophet_n be_v not_o know_v by_o the_o leaf_n or_o flower_n of_o a_o outward_a profession_n but_o by_o their_o fruit_n v._o 18._o a_o good_a tree_n can_v bring_v forth_o evil_a fruit_n neither_o can_v a_o corrupt_a tree_n bring_v forth_o good_a fruit._n christ_n amplify_v what_o he_o have_v deliver_v show_v that_o a_o good_a will_n from_o the_o habit_n of_o grace_n in_o the_o soul_n bring_v forth_o good_a thing_n ordinary_o and_o usual_o and_o a_o evil_a will_n from_o the_o habit_n of_o sin_n in_o the_o soul_n bring_v evil_a thing_n but_o christ_n mean_v first_o the_o man_n must_v be_v change_v that_o his_o work_n may_v be_v change_v but_o who_o be_v find_v good_a of_o the_o lord_n see_v christ_n die_v for_o sinner_n therefore_o he_o find_v we_o all_o bad_a tree_n but_o give_v we_o power_n to_o believe_v on_o his_o name_n aug._n de_fw-fr verb._n domini_fw-la serm._n 12._o but_o if_o we_o carry_v it_o to_o teacher_n we_o must_v understand_v it_o so_o far_o as_o he_o be_v a_o good_a teacher_n for_o even_o good_a teacher_n have_v be_v mistake_v in_o some_o thing_n they_o can_v bring_v forth_o corrupt_a doctrine_n nor_o can_v a_o corrupt_a teacher_n so_o far_o as_o he_o be_v corrupt_a bring_v forth_o good_a doctrine_n it_o be_v usual_a that_o the_o action_n of_o the_o body_n be_v suitable_a to_o the_o quality_n of_o the_o mind_n matth._n 12.34_o 35._o a_o good_a man_n out_o of_o the_o good_a treasure_n of_o his_o heart_n bring_v forth_o that_o which_o be_v good_a a_o evil_a man_n out_o of_o the_o evil_a treasure_n of_o his_o heart_n bring_v forth_o that_o which_o be_v evil_a if_o we_o understand_v it_o of_o man_n we_o must_v understand_v it_o of_o man_n as_o in_o their_o natural_a estate_n but_o as_o a_o tree_n when_o it_o be_v transplant_v bring_v forth_o good_a fruit_n though_o natural_o without_o transplantation_n it_o can_v not_o so_o when_o person_n be_v transplant_v out_o of_o their_o natural_a estate_n into_o christ_n they_o bring_v forth_o good_a fruit_n john_n 15.4_o 5._o though_o in_o their_o natural_a state_n they_o can_v not_o if_o we_o carry_v it_o to_o teacher_n as_o christ_n mean_v both_o than_o the_o meaning_n be_v if_o these_o prophet_n be_v true_a lover_n of_o godliness_n as_o they_o will_v seem_v to_o be_v they_o will_v not_o usual_o commit_v such_o thing_n as_o be_v direct_o contrary_a to_o godliness_n as_o they_o do_v v._o 19_o every_o tree_n that_o bring_v not_o forth_o good_a fruit_n be_v hew_v down_o and_o cast_v into_o the_o fire_n v._o 20._o wherefore_o by_o their_o fruit_n you_o shall_v know_v they_o here_o be_v the_o punishment_n of_o false_a prophet_n the_o word_n be_v a_o similitude_n take_v from_o a_o husbandman_n and_o be_v denounce_v against_o all_o hypocrite_n in_o general_a who_o have_v the_o leaf_n of_o profession_n but_o want_v the_o power_n of_o godliness_n and_o in_o particular_a against_o hypocritical_a false_a prophet_n john_n 15.6_o if_o a_o man_n abide_v not_o in_o i_o he_o be_v cast_v forth_o as_o a_o branch_n that_o be_v wither_v and_o man_n gather_v they_o and_o cast_v they_o into_o the_o fire_n and_o they_o be_v burn_v as_o the_o husbandman_n cast_v fruitless_a branch_n into_o the_o fire_n so_o will_v christ_n cast_v such_o as_o bring_v not_o forth_o good_a fruit_n into_o the_o fire_n of_o hell_n see_v matth._n 3.10_o in_o particular_a false_a prophet_n bring_v upon_o themselves_o swift_a destruction_n their_o judgement_n linger_v not_o and_o their_o damnation_n slumber_v not_o 2_o peter_z 2_o 1_o 3._o be_v hew_v down_o and_o cast_v into_o the_o fire_n they_o be_v now_o at_o present_a hew_a dough_n by_o the_o threaten_n of_o god_n and_o shall_v hereafter_o be_v throw_v into_o hell_n wherefore_o by_o their_o fruit_n you_o shall_v know_v they_o christ_n here_o conclude_v thus_o q._n d._n see_v man_n usual_o teach_v thing_n suitable_a to_o their_o manner_n and_o practice_n by_o such_o kind_n of_o corrupt_a teach_n you_o may_v suspect_v these_o prophet_n before_o they_o instill_v or_o drop_v in_o their_o opinion_n into_o you_o for_o such_o as_o the_o master_n be_v such_o will_v they_o make_v the_o scholar_n such_o as_o the_o tree_n be_v such_o will_v the_o fruit_n be_v v._o 21._o not_o every_o one_o that_o say_v unto_o i_o lord_n lord_n shall_v enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n but_o he_o that_o do_v the_o will_n of_o my_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n christ_n from_o reprehend_v false_a prophet_n come_v to_o reprehend_v all_o hypocritical_a formalist_n whether_o teacher_n or_o hearer_n who_o pretend_v the_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n in_o a_o great_a show_n of_o holiness_n but_o deny_v it_o in_o their_o work_n they_o prophesy_v in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n and_o wrought_v miracle_n but_o do_v not_o do_v christ_n his_o will_n in_o the_o word_n two_o thing_n 1_o a_o exclusion_n of_o hypocritical_a formalist_n or_o formal_a hypocrite_n out_o of_o god_n kingdom_n not_o every_o one_o that_o say_v lord_n lord_n etc._n etc._n a_o name_n without_o a_o thing_n be_v nothing_o it_o be_v as_o a_o ornament_n in_o the_o clay_n or_o a_o jewel_n in_o the_o mire_n 2_o a_o reception_n of_o those_o who_o have_v a_o sincere_a purpose_n to_o obey_v god_n but_o he_o that_o do_v the_o will_n of_o my_o father_n to_o do_v the_o will_n of_o god_n be_v 1_o to_o believe_v on_o christ_n john_n 6.40_o this_o be_v the_o will_n of_o the_o father_n that_o every_o one_o that_o see_v the_o son_n and_o believe_v on_o he_o shall_v have_v everlasting_a life_n 2_o to_o declare_v our_o faith_n by_o a_o sanctify_a course_n of_o obedience_n 1_o thess_n 4.4_o this_o be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n even_o our_o sanctification_n 3_o to_o have_v a_o purpose_n for_o all_o god_n command_v without_o except_v of_o any_o psal_n 119.6_o 106._o col._n 1.10.4.12_o heb._n 13.20_o 21._o but_o he_o that_o do_v the_o will_n of_o my_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n and_o consequent_o my_o will_n for_o i_o and_o my_o father_n be_v one_o joh._n 14.7_o and_o the_o father_n be_v in_o the_o son_n and_o the_o son_n in_o the_o father_n but_o christ_n as_o he_o be_v man_n for_o modesty_n sake_n name_v the_o will_n of_o the_o father_n and_o not_o his_o own_o from_o the_o word_n thus_o open_v observe_v obs_n 1_o that_o in_o the_o visible_a church_n there_o
that_o christ_n be_v mere_a man_n and_o not_o god_n who_o will_n only_o be_v omnipotent_a arrius_n teach_v that_o christ_n be_v less_o than_o the_o father_n and_o therefore_o do_v not_o command_v but_o only_o receive_v the_o command_n of_o the_o father_n manicheus_fw-la teach_v that_o christ_n have_v not_o true_a but_o only_o imaginary_a flesh_n and_o therefore_o can_v neither_o touch_n nor_o be_v touch_v christ_n confute_v all_o these_o in_o these_o word_n be_v thou_o clean_o here_o be_v the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n man_n be_v wont_a to_o command_v action_n but_o to_o make_v thing_n to_o be_v by_o command_v they_o to_o be_v be_v only_o divine_a gen._n 1._o let_v there_o be_v light_n and_o there_o be_v light_a let_v the_o earth_n be_v create_v and_o it_o be_v so_o immediate_o his_o leprosy_n be_v cleanse_v with_o a_o touch_n of_o christ_n hand_n and_o with_o a_o word_n of_o his_o mouth_n he_o touch_v he_o that_o the_o cure_n may_v not_o seem_v to_o come_v by_o chance_n but_o that_o it_o only_o come_v from_o himself_o 2_o to_o show_v the_o mercy_n and_o condescension_n of_o christ_n that_o do_v not_o disdain_v to_o touch_v a_o leprous_a person_n much_o more_o in_o take_v leprosy_n of_o sin_n on_o he_o and_o make_v we_o one_o body_n he_o in_o that_o this_o leprosy_n be_v cure_v immediate_o there_o come_v come_v no_o space_n of_o time_n nor_o no_o outward_a mean_a betwixt_o the_o command_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o work_n of_o christ_n v._o 4._o and_o jesus_n say_v unto_o he_o see_v thou_o tell_v no_o man_n but_o go_v thy_o way_n show_v thyself_o to_o the_o priest_n and_o offer_v the_o gift_n that_o moses_n command_v for_o a_o testimony_n unto_o they_o see_v thou_o tell_v no_o man_n there_o be_v sundry_a cause_n why_o christ_n enjoin_v he_o silence_n 1_o christ_n do_v not_o forbid_v he_o to_o tell_v it_o at_o any_o time_n but_o that_o he_o shall_v not_o tell_v it_o till_o he_o have_v show_v himself_o to_o the_o priest_n lest_o the_o priest_n hear_v of_o the_o cure_n shall_v malicious_o report_v that_o the_o leper_n be_v not_o true_o heal_v according_a to_o the_o law_n levit._n 14._o wherein_o the_o priest_n be_v to_o judge_n of_o leprosy_n and_o therefore_o in_o the_o text_n it_o follow_v go_v show_v thyself_o to_o the_o priest_n this_o miracle_n fall_v out_o in_o galilee_n mark_v 1.39_o and_o the_o priest_n be_v at_o jerusalem_n the_o priest_n be_v call_v out_o of_o the_o city_n that_o they_o may_v judge_n of_o the_o disease_n there_o be_v other_o cause_n as_o 1_o for_o modesty_n sake_n and_o to_o avoid_v boast_v 2_o for_o not_o speak_v forth_o that_o in_o word_n which_o speak_v forth_o itself_o in_o deed_n in_o his_o whole_a body_n the_o leprosy_n be_v remove_v 3_o because_o the_o fit_a time_n be_v not_o come_v therefore_o the_o leper_n zeal_n be_v disorderly_a in_o publish_v that_o christ_n will_v have_v keep_v silent_a mark_v 1.45_o 4_o lest_o hereby_o christ_n shall_v stir_v up_o the_o envy_n and_o hatred_n of_o the_o pharisee_n against_o he_o and_o so_o be_v force_v to_o go_v from_o the_o city_n not_o have_v a_o opportunity_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n mark_v 1.45_o so_o that_o christ_n can_v no_o more_o open_o enter_v into_o the_o city_n but_o be_v force_v to_o remain_v in_o desert_n place_n but_o go_v thy_o way_n show_v thyself_o to_o the_o priest_n christ_n bid_v he_o show_v himself_o to_o the_o priest_n 1_o because_o the_o ceremony_n be_v yet_o in_o force_n now_o the_o ceremonial_a command_n be_v that_o the_o leper_n shall_v show_v himself_o to_o the_o priest_n levit._n 14.2_o 2_o that_o the_o heal_v leper_n may_v test_n fie_o his_o thankfulness_n to_o god_n for_o so_o great_a a_o benefit_n by_o bring_v a_o thank-offering_n levit._n 14.1_o to_o 9_o 3_o to_o draw_v the_o priest_n either_o to_o faith_n in_o christ_n and_o repentance_n for_o their_o opposition_n against_o he_o or_o else_o that_o they_o may_v be_v inexcusable_a hence_o these_o word_n follow_v for_o a_o testimony_n unto_o they_o 4_o to_o get_v a_o testimonial_a of_o his_o cure_n and_o offer_v the_o gift_n which_o moses_n command_v see_v what_o this_o be_v levit._n 14.3_o 4_o 5_o 6_o 7._o it_o be_v a_o oblation_n or_o thank-offering_n to_o god_n for_o his_o cleanse_n for_o a_o testimony_n unto_o they_o as_o 1_o that_o they_o may_v be_v inexcusable_a if_o they_o will_v not_o embrace_v christ_n for_o the_o son_n of_o god_n 2_o that_o the_o receive_n of_o the_o gift_n may_v be_v a_o continual_a testimony_n against_o the_o priest_n that_o the_o leprosy_n be_v perfect_o heal_v if_o they_o through_o malice_n shall_v in_o time_n to_o come_v go_v about_o to_o deny_v it_o they_o can_v not_o say_v such_o a_o one_o be_v not_o cure_v for_o who_o they_o have_v offer_v a_o thank-offering_n to_o god_n christ_n will_v have_v they_o that_o be_v his_o adversary_n to_o be_v the_o first_o witness_n of_o his_o miracle_n beside_o it_o be_v that_o he_o may_v be_v restore_v to_o the_o society_n of_o man_n from_o who_o company_n he_o have_v be_v sever_v but_o that_o from_o hence_o papist_n may_v wiredraw_v the_o law_n of_o their_o confession_n make_v leprosy_n to_o be_v allegorical_o sin_n and_o the_o priest_n the_o knower_n hereof_o be_v a_o vain_a thing_n for_o what_o honour_n those_o priest_n have_v christ_n alone_o challenge_v to_o himself_o who_o alone_o know_v spiritual_a leprosy_n and_o be_v worthy_a to_o who_o we_o shall_v offer_v the_o gift_n of_o our_o cleanse_n indeed_o sin_n be_v like_a leprosy_n 1_o for_o loathsomeness_n prov._n 13.5_o ezek._n 16.5_o 2_o for_o smell_n a_o leper_n from_o such_o corruption_n of_o humour_n can_v but_o smell_v so_o sinner_n stink_v though_o perhaps_o not_o one_o to_o another_o as_o nasty_a prisoner_n in_o the_o goal_n yet_o to_o those_o that_o come_v out_o of_o the_o fresh_a air_n so_o though_o wicked_a man_n stink_v not_o one_o to_o another_o yet_o to_o god_n and_o saint_n they_o do_v psal_n 14.3_o they_o be_v altogether_o become_v stink_v as_o the_o margin_n render_v it_o 3_o for_o hereditariness_n as_o the_o leprosy_n be_v convey_v from_o father_n to_o son_n so_o be_v original_a defilement_n eph._n 2.3_o rom._n 5.12_o 4_o for_o excommunicableness_n leprosy_n separate_v not_o only_o from_o divine_a service_n but_o also_o from_o society_n with_o man_n so_o sin_n live_v in_o separate_v betwixt_o god_n and_o we_o and_o separate_v from_o communion_n of_o saint_n isa_n 59.1_o 2._o matth._n 18.15_o 16_o 17._o 5_o for_o contagion_n leprosy_n be_v very_o infectious_a so_o be_v sin_n 1_o cor._n 5.6_o a_o little_a leaven_n leaven_n the_o whole_a lump_n only_o here_o be_v the_o difference_n the_o leper_n proclaim_v his_o uncleanness_n that_o man_n may_v take_v heed_n of_o be_v infect_v by_o he_o levit._n 13.45_o which_o sinner_n will_v not_o 6_o leprosy_n creep_v from_o one_o place_n to_o another_o till_o the_o whole_a body_n be_v overspread_v with_o it_o so_o do_v corruption_n or_o sin_n it_o creep_v from_o the_o heart_n to_o the_o member_n of_o the_o body_n and_o faculty_n of_o the_o soul_n so_o that_o from_o the_o crown_n of_o the_o head_n to_o the_o sole_a of_o the_o foot_n there_o be_v nothing_o but_o wound_n and_o swell_n and_o putrify_a sore_n isa_n 1.6_o though_o in_o a_o tropological_a sense_n sin_n may_v thus_o be_v resemble_v to_o leprosy_n yet_o leprosy_n proper_o take_v be_v mean_v and_o no_o popish_a inference_n of_o priestly_a power_n can_v thence_o be_v deduce_v obs_n no_o person_n whatsoever_o how_o vile_a soever_o by_o bodily_a distemper_n be_v hereby_o keep_v off_o from_o worship_v god_n 2_o he_o that_o believe_v that_o god_n will_v do_v he_o good_a must_v also_o be_v convince_v of_o the_o power_n of_o god_n that_o god_n can_v do_v he_o good_a 3_o all_o cleanse_n from_o bodily_a disease_n proceed_v from_o the_o will_n of_o god_n as_o the_o primitive_a cause_n thereof_o i_o will_v be_v thou_o clean_a 4_o disease_n however_o in_o the_o use_n of_o second_o cause_n they_o be_v hardly_o cure_v or_o incurable_a yet_o by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n they_o be_v and_o have_v be_v heal_v immediate_o his_o leprosy_n depart_v 5_o from_o these_o word_n see_v thou_o tell_v no_o man_n obs_n disobedience_n unto_o the_o command_v of_o christ_n though_o upon_o the_o most_o specious_a pretence_n can_v excuse_v it_o from_o be_v a_o sin_n 6_o show_v thyself_o to_o the_o priest_n and_o offer_v the_o gift_n obs_n the_o external_a and_o ceremonial_a part_n of_o worship_n when_o and_o so_o long_o as_o it_o be_v institute_v by_o god_n onght_n not_o to_o be_v slight_v or_o neglect_v 7_o for_o a_o testimony_n unto_o they_o obs_n person_n that_o at_o present_a be_v opposite_a to_o christ_n and_o his_o truth_n we_o shall_v use_v the_o best_a mean_n we_o can_v to_o convince_v they_o that_o
by_o our_o prayer_n psal_n 93.3_o 4._o and_o there_o be_v a_o great_a calm_a see_v the_o obedience_n of_o the_o mighty_a creature_n to_o god_n how_o will_v this_o condemn_v our_o disobedience_n see_v how_o wind_n yield_v obedience_n psal_n 107.26_o compare_v with_o 29._o see_v the_o sea_n obedience_n jer._n 5.22_o let_v not_o the_o wind_n and_o sea_n overcome_v you_o in_o overcome_v the_o storm_n of_o the_o mind_n v._o 27._o but_o the_o man_n marvel_v say_v what_o manner_n of_o man_n be_v this_o that_o even_o the_o wind_n and_o sea_n obey_v he_o here_o be_v a_o five_o circumstance_n they_o reason_v thus_o he_o who_o wind_n and_o sea_n obey_v must_v be_v great_a than_o all_o mortal_n but_o they_o obey_v this_o man_n therefore_o he_o be_v great_a than_o all_o man_n this_o shall_v stir_v we_o up_o to_o confidence_n in_o the_o son_n joh._n 14.1_o let_v not_o your_o heart_n be_v trouble_v you_o believe_v in_o god_n believe_v also_o in_o i_o q._n d._n i_o be_o god_n as_o well_o as_o my_o father_n therefore_o believe_v on_o i_o so_o that_o as_o it_o be_v say_v of_o the_o lord_n psal_n 89.9_o thou_o rule_a the_o rage_a of_o the_o sea_n when_o the_o wave_n thereof_o arise_v thou_o still_a they_o so_o also_o do_v christ_n at_o this_o time_n the_o creature_n be_v god_n executioner_n to_o punish_v man_n for_o sin_n when_o they_o exceed_v herein_o the_o lord_n reprove_v they_o as_o a_o father_n do_v a_o schoolmaster_n when_o he_o see_v he_o unmeasurable_o to_o chastise_v his_o son_n the_o greatness_n of_o which_o miracle_n which_o make_v it_o more_o admirable_a be_v that_o whereas_o usual_o in_o storm_n when_o the_o wind_n cease_v the_o sea_n be_v not_o calm_a till_o a_o good_a while_n after_o but_o here_o both_o wind_n cease_v and_o the_o sea_n be_v calm_a together_o in_o a_o instant_n show_v it_o come_v from_o a_o miracle_n not_o from_o nature_n for_o the_o calm_a be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o signify_v to_o laugh_v to_o note_v that_o the_o weather_n and_o sea_n smile_v on_o they_o with_o a_o clear_a countenance_n all_o expositor_n make_v the_o church_n a_o arbitrary_a antitype_n of_o this_o toss_a ship_n as_o this_o ship_n be_v poor_a a_o mean_a fisher_n boat_n not_o to_o be_v compare_v to_o the_o great_a merchant_n ship_n and_o man_n of_o war_n so_o the_o poor_a church_n be_v not_o to_o be_v compare_v for_o outward_a glory_n with_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o world_n and_o as_o when_o the_o proud_a scribe_n leave_v christ_n the_o poor_a disciple_n accompany_v christ_n through_o the_o sea_n so_o when_o rich_a and_o great_a man_n leave_v christ_n the_o poor_a disciple_n accompany_v christ_n through_o the_o troublesome_a sea_n of_o this_o world_n again_o as_o this_o ship_n be_v in_o danger_n so_o have_v the_o church_n be_v oft_o in_o egypt_n babylon_n in_o the_o ten_o persecution_n and_o popish_a tyranny_n ready_a to_o be_v swallow_v up_o of_o wave_n but_o the_o lord_n seasonable_o appear_v either_o by_o cut_v off_o tyrant_n as_o he_o do_v pharaoh_n exod._n 14.25_o and_o herod_n act._n 12.23_o or_o by_o put_v a_o hook_n in_o their_o nostril_n as_o he_o do_v to_o sennacherib_n 2_o king_n 19.28_o or_o by_o turn_v the_o heart_n of_o persecutor_n whereby_o the_o church_n have_v rest_n as_o he_o do_v paul_n act._n 9.31_o this_o church_n so_o toss_v be_v not_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o the_o papist_n paint_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v the_o steersman_n sit_v at_o the_o helm_n and_o the_o cardinal_n bishop_n and_o priest_n to_o be_v the_o mariner_n but_o it_o be_v a_o company_n of_o saint_n who_o because_o they_o will_v live_v godly_a suffer_v persecution_n 2_o tim._n 3.12_o with_o these_o it_o be_v that_o christ_n be_v present_a in_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o covenant_n and_o in_o the_o word_n of_o promise_n and_o with_o his_o support_a presence_n in_o time_n of_o storm_n they_o pretend_v they_o have_v no_o schism_n nor_o contention_n but_o perfect_a unity_n but_o this_o prove_v they_o not_o to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n because_o the_o ship_n wherein_o christ_n be_v be_v expose_v to_o storm_n and_o christ_n come_v not_o to_o bring_v peace_n but_o a_o sword_n matth._n 10.34_o and_o if_o unity_n among_o they_o may_v prove_v they_o a_o church_n then_o may_v it_o prove_v the_o turk_n and_o jew_n to_o be_v church_n who_o have_v more_o of_o unity_n than_o they_o v._o 28._o and_o when_o he_o be_v come_v to_o the_o other_o side_n into_o the_o country_n of_o the_o gergesenes_n there_o meet_v he_o two_o possess_v with_o devil_n come_v out_o of_o the_o tomb_n exceed_v fierce_a so_o that_o no_o man_n may_v pass_v by_o that_o way_n in_o these_o word_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o chapter_n be_v set_v down_o what_o befall_v christ_n when_o he_o be_v go_v from_o capernaum_n over_o the_o lake_n of_o genezareth_n into_o the_o country_n of_o the_o gerasen_n 1_o he_o be_v meet_v with_o two_o man_n possess_v with_o devil_n the_o devil_n be_v describe_v 1_o that_o they_o come_v out_o of_o the_o tomb_n 2_o by_o their_o exceed_a fierceness_n that_o no_o man_n may_v pass_v that_o way_n 2_o the_o complaint_n they_o make_v which_o be_v twofold_a 1_o disclaim_v their_o interest_n in_o christ_n what_o have_v we_o to_o do_v with_o thou_o jesus_n thou_o son_n of_o god_n ver_fw-la 29._o thou_o be_v the_o saviour_n of_o man_n not_o our_o saviour_n 2_o their_o fear_n of_o a_o present_a torment_n be_v thou_o come_v to_o torment_v we_o before_o the_o time_n ver_fw-la 29._o 3_o their_o petition_n if_o thou_o cast_v we_o out_o suffer_v we_o to_o go_v into_o the_o herd_n of_o swine_n v._o 31._o 4_o here_o be_v christ_n permission_n of_o they_o to_o enter_v the_o hog_n he_o say_v unto_o they_o go_v v._o 32._o 5_o here_o be_v the_o devil_n execution_n of_o their_o mischief_n have_v once_o obtain_v a_o permission_n the_o devil_n enter_v into_o the_o swine_n the_o whole_a herd_n go_v down_o a_o steep_a place_n and_o perish_v in_o the_o water_n v._o 32._o 6_o the_o report_n hereof_o that_o be_v bring_v to_o the_o city_n v._o 33._o 7_o the_o issue_n and_o effect_n the_o gadarens_fw-la be_v offend_v for_o the_o loss_n of_o their_o hog_n desire_v he_o to_o depart_v out_o of_o their_o coast_n and_o when_o he_o have_v come_v to_o the_o other_o side_n into_o the_o country_n of_o the_o gergasen_n matthew_n call_v they_o gergafens_n mark_n and_o luke_n gadarens_n but_o there_o be_v no_o difficulty_n for_o gergessa_n or_o gerasa_n and_o gedara_n be_v town_n near_o thereto_o joseph_n lib._n 2._o de_fw-la bello_fw-la cap._n 2._o mention_n both_o gerasen_n and_o gadarens_n these_o be_v the_o remainder_n of_o the_o canaanite_n as_o grotius_n write_v and_o as_o it_o appear_v gen._n 10.16_o the_o remainder_n of_o the_o people_n who_o land_n be_v give_v to_o israel_n deut._n 7.1_o suppose_a to_o be_v the_o geshurite_n and_o maacathite_n jos_n 13.13_o there_o meet_v he_o two_o possess_v with_o devil_n mark_n and_o luke_n mention_v only_o one_o but_o the_o answer_n be_v easy_a the_o one_o be_v more_o famous_a than_o the_o other_o be_v possess_v of_o a_o whole_a legion_n of_o devil_n mar._n 5.9_o luk._n 8.30_o and_o so_o be_v more_o cruel_a mark_v and_o luke_n prosecute_a the_o history_n of_o the_o man_n possess_v with_o a_o legion_n of_o devil_n do_v omit_v the_o mention_v the_o other_o demoniak_a come_v out_o of_o the_o tomb_n they_o come_v out_o thence_o and_o abode_n there_o to_o affright_v man_n with_o fear_n of_o death_n their_o abode_n and_o dwelling_n be_v among_o the_o tomb_n mark_v 5.3_o luk._n 8.27_o now_o they_o may_v easy_o dwell_v in_o the_o tomb_n because_o they_o be_v hollow_a place_n dig_v out_o of_o a_o rock_n as_o christ_n sepulchre_n be_v matth._n 27.60_o whereinto_o john_n and_o peter_n enter_v joh._n 20.6_o and_o those_o three_o woman_n that_o bring_v spice_n luk._n 24.3_o or_o else_o they_o be_v make_v of_o stone_n or_o brick_n and_o cover_v over_o now_o if_o it_o be_v ask_v why_o they_o dwell_v there_o it_o be_v because_o one_o of_o the_o demoniak_v be_v possess_v with_o a_o cruel_a devil_n or_o rather_o a_o legion_n of_o they_o no_o man_n will_v receive_v they_o to_o their_o house_n they_o be_v exclude_v from_o humane_a society_n reside_v in_o old_a sepulcher_n one_o of_o these_o demoniock_n wear_v no_o clothes_n and_o be_v bind_v with_o chain_n and_o sometime_o break_v they_o luk._n 8.27_o 29._o matthew_n add_v they_o be_v exceed_o fierce_a and_o that_o they_o be_v so_o troublesome_a to_o passenger_n that_o no_o man_n may_v pass_v by_o that_o way_n mark_n add_v that_o no_o man_n can_v tame_v he_o and_o that_o he_o be_v day_n and_o night_n in_o the_o mountain_n and_o tomb_n cry_v and_o cut_v himself_o with_o stone_n
father_n be_v sick_a paul_n pray_v and_o lay_v his_o hand_n on_o he_o and_o heal_v he_o it_o may_v be_v suppose_v the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o this_o jam._n 5.14_o be_v any_o among_o you_o sick_a let_v he_o send_v for_o the_o elder_n of_o the_o church_n and_o let_v they_o pray_v over_o he_o anoint_v he_o with_o oil_n so_o christ_n mark_v 6.5_o mark_n 16.18_o 2_o ordinatory_n there_o be_v a_o lay_v on_o of_o hand_n in_o ordination_n of_o elder_n this_o be_v acknowledge_v by_o all_o the_o reform_a church_n of_o what_o judgement_n soever_o though_o papist_n acknowledge_v this_o to_o be_v a_o unblottable_a character_n which_o who_o so_o have_v can_v never_o blot_v it_o out_o again_o yet_o the_o protestant_n acknowledge_v it_o only_o a_o sign_n point_v out_o the_o person_n ordain_v who_o be_v commend_v to_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o church_n hence_o that_o say_n of_o augustine_n be_v ordinary_o produce_v quid_fw-la aliud_fw-la est_fw-la impositio_fw-la manuum_fw-la quam_fw-la oratio_fw-la super_fw-la hominem_fw-la what_o other_o thing_n be_v lay_v on_o of_o hand_n than_o prayer_n upon_o the_o man_n ordain_v beside_o these_o two_o there_o be_v a_o three_o way_n which_o i_o suppose_v come_v near_a to_o truth_n which_o be_v that_o by_o lay_v on_o of_o hand_n in_o ordination_n there_o be_v a_o further_a measure_n of_o the_o spirit_n infuse_v into_o and_o pour_v upon_o the_o person_n ordain_v concern_v lay_n on_o of_o hand_n in_o ordination_n the_o scripture_n speak_v 1_o of_o those_o who_o be_v send_v into_o the_o world_n act._n 13._o when_o they_o have_v fast_v and_o pray_v and_o lay_v their_o hand_n on_o they_o they_o send_v they_o away_o v._o 5._o 2_o on_o those_o who_o be_v officer_n in_o church_n as_o deacons_n act._n 6.6_o the_o apostle_n first_o pray_v then_o lay_v their_o hand_n on_o they_o so_o elder_n act_n 14.23_o and_o when_o they_o have_v ordain_v they_o elder_n in_o every_o church_n by_o lay_v on_o of_o hand_n the_o word_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o have_v pray_v with_o fast_v they_o commend_v they_o to_o the_o lord_n 1_o tim._n 5.22_o lay_v hand_n sudden_o on_o no_o man_n neither_o be_v partaker_n of_o other_o man_n sin_n that_o be_v by_o consent_v to_o ordain_v such_o 3_o there_o be_v a_o lay_v on_o of_o hand_n on_o baptize_v person_n after_o baptism_n this_o have_v be_v deprave_v 1_o by_o those_o who_o have_v endeavour_v to_o make_v work_v of_o miracle_n a_o concomitant_a thereof_o because_o some_o person_n in_o the_o apostle_n time_n after_o hand_n lay_v on_o they_o do_v speak_v with_o tongue_n act._n 19.6.7_o and_o prophesy_v 2_o this_o lay_n on_o of_o hand_n have_v be_v deprave_v by_o the_o romanist_n 1_o by_o change_v the_o name_n from_o lay_v on_o of_o hand_n to_o confirmation_n 2_o by_o assign_v it_o a_o outward_a matter_n viz._n oil_n and_o balsam_n and_o the_o form_n of_o it_o to_o be_v i_o sign_n thou_o with_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n and_o confirm_v thou_o with_o the_o anoint_v of_o salvation_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n son_n and_o spirit_n chem._n exam_n count_v trid._n part_n 2._o p._n 95._o 3_o that_o those_o thing_n they_o attribute_v to_o confirmation_n they_o deny_v to_o be_v give_v and_o receive_v in_o baptism_n 4_o that_o they_o ascribe_v a_o indelible_a character_n unto_o it_o as_o to_o baptism_n and_o order_n chem._n p_o be_v 2._o cap._n de_fw-fr charactere_fw-la p._n 45._o 5_o by_o affix_v it_o on_o a_o bishop_n gratian_n distinct_a 68_o fol._n 99_o propound_v this_o question_n wherein_o chorepiscopi_fw-la by_o which_o i_o suppose_v he_o mean_v either_o rural_a dean_n or_o suffragans_fw-la differ_v from_o bishop_n answer_n and_o give_v this_o as_o one_o difference_n that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o they_o to_o give_v the_o comforter_n the_o holy_a spirit_n by_o lay_v on_o of_o hand_n to_o baptise_a believer_n or_o convert_v heretic_n 3_o laying_z on_o of_o hand_n have_v be_v deprave_v by_o the_o episcopal_a party_n who_o retain_v the_o popish_a name_n of_o confirmation_n and_o affix_v it_o to_o a_o diocesan_n bishop_n instead_o of_o prayer_n for_o strengthen_v of_o believer_n 1_o lay_v hand_n upon_o infant_n or_o young_a child_n 2_o suppose_v they_o all_o to_o be_v regenerate_v after_o baptism_n pray_v for_o a_o increase_n of_o grace_n on_o they_o 3_o have_v add_v hereto_o godfathers_n as_o they_o call_v it_o now_o to_o prove_v lay_v on_o of_o hand_n on_o baptise_a person_n be_v a_o apostolical_a institution_n i_o prove_v it_o 1_o because_o the_o apostle_n make_v it_o one_o of_o the_o six_o principle_n or_o the_o word_n of_o the_o begin_n of_o christ_n heb._n 6.1_o or_o the_o first_o rudiment_n or_o element_n of_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o oracle_n of_o god_n heb._n 5.12_o the_o word_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v only_a explanatory_n for_o the_o principle_n of_o all_o art_n be_v call_v element_n nay_o which_o be_v more_o the_o apostle_n call_v it_o a_o foundation_n as_o well_o as_o repentance_n faith_n and_o baptism_n now_o the_o five_o other_o be_v fundamental_o wherein_o all_o convert_a person_n be_v to_o be_v practical_a in_o the_o belief_n how_o can_v lay_v on_o of_o hand_n be_v exclude_v from_o be_v so_o receive_v 2_o if_o lay_v on_o of_o hand_n on_o baptise_a person_n after_o baptism_n be_v reject_v then_o instead_o of_o six_o principle_n lay_v down_o by_o the_o apostle_n we_o shall_v receive_v only_o five_o but_o this_o be_v absurd_a obj._n but_o we_o acknowledge_v a_o lay_n on_o of_o hand_n in_o the_o call_n of_o ministry_n therefore_o we_o acknowledge_v six_o answ_n and_o why_o not_o as_o well_o after_o baptism_n what_o reason_n can_v be_v bring_v that_o ministerial_a imposition_n shall_v be_v here_o acknowledge_v and_o the_o imposition_n after_o baptism_n exclude_v nay_o it_o seem_v imposition_n after_o baptism_n be_v rather_o mean_v 1_o because_o as_o faith_n and_o repentance_n go_v together_o resurrection_n and_o the_o last_o judgement_n so_o baptism_n and_o lay_v on_o of_o hand_n go_v together_o in_o the_o apostle_n join_v of_o they_o 2_o lay_v on_o of_o hand_n upon_o officer_n be_v not_o herein_o mean_v because_o this_o be_v a_o administration_n the_o whole_a church_n have_v receive_v act._n 8.16_o heb._n 6.1_o but_o officer_n be_v not_o the_o whole_a church_n 3_o because_o this_o lay_v on_o of_o hand_n be_v call_v milk_n for_o babe_n heb._n 5.12_o 13._o but_o officer_n be_v not_o babe_n 3_o because_o there_o be_v a_o command_n for_o it_o 1_o it_o be_v call_v the_o rudiment_n of_o the_o beginning_n or_o element_n of_o the_o beginning_n he_o mean_v not_o element_n of_o the_o world_n of_o which_o gal._n 4.3_o 8._o col._n 2.8_o 20._o that_o be_v element_n wherein_o person_n be_v initiate_v or_o begin_v in_o christianity_n heb._n 5.12_o as_o the_o element_n of_o the_o latin_a tongue_n be_v the_o learning_n of_o accidence_n or_o grammar_n so_o this_o doctrine_n of_o lay_v on_o of_o hand_n be_v first_o to_o be_v teach_v and_o practise_v 2_o it_o be_v call_v a_o oracle_n heb._n 5.12_o now_o what_o be_v oracle_n in_o scripture_n language_n but_o command_n act._n 7.38_o moses_n receive_v the_o lively_a oracle_n to_o give_v unto_o we_o this_o be_v call_v the_o law_n ver_fw-la 53._o who_o have_v receive_v the_o law_n by_o the_o disposition_n of_o angel_n and_o have_v not_o keep_v it_o rom._n 3.2_o what_o advantage_n have_v the_o jew_n much_o every_o way_n chief_o that_o unto_o they_o be_v commit_v the_o oracle_n of_o god_n see_v psal_n 147.19_o 20._o 1_o pet._n 4.11_o if_o any_o man_n speak_v let_v he_o speak_v as_o the_o oracle_n of_o god_n that_o be_v as_o the_o command_n of_o god_n 3_o the_o apostle_n call_v it_o a_o foundation_n heb._n 6.1_o so_o that_o there_o be_v not_o only_o a_o virtual_a command_n but_o a_o actual_a command_n from_o these_o three_o word_n of_o rudiment_n or_o element_n oracle_n and_o foundation_n i_o gather_v a_o plain_a command_n 3_o it_o appear_v from_o absurdity_n be_v it_o not_o absurd_a to_o think_v that_o one_o of_o the_o six_o foundation_n principle_n commend_v to_o we_o by_o the_o apostle_n shall_v cease_v and_o all_o other_o of_o they_o to_o remain_v to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n nay_o be_v not_o imposition_n after_o baptism_n place_v in_o the_o midst_n betwixt_o faith_n and_o repentance_n the_o resurrection_n and_o last_o judgement_n so_o that_o there_o be_v no_o come_v to_o slight_v it_o be_v fence_v on_o every_o side_n but_o we_o must_v renounce_v faith_n and_o repentance_n on_o the_o one_o side_n or_o the_o resurrection_n and_o last_o judgement_n on_o the_o other_o be_v it_o not_o absurd_a to_o think_v the_o apostle_n will_v place_v one_o temporary_a principle_n which_o be_v to_o last_v but_o for_o a_o small_a time_n
true_a baptism_n learn_v this_o observation_n descend_v from_o that_o authority_n that_o after_o the_o lord_n ascension_n the_o holy_a spirit_n come_v down_o upon_o the_o apostle_n eusebius_n in_o his_o history_n lib._n 6._o cap._n 35._o relate_v that_o novatus_n though_o he_o be_v baptize_v yet_o because_o he_o be_v not_o confirm_v or_o have_v hand_n lay_v on_o he_o after_o baptism_n he_o never_o obtain_v the_o holy_a ghost_n his_o word_n be_v neither_o do_v he_o get_v other_o thing_n wherewith_o he_o ought_v to_o have_v be_v endue_v after_o baptism_n according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o church_n nor_o be_v he_o seal_v of_o the_o bishop_n with_o the_o lord_n seal_v mean_v imposition_n after_o baptism_n which_o he_o have_v not_o obtain_v how_o can_v he_o i_o pray_v you_o obtain_v the_o spirit_n for_o modern_a learned_a man_n take_v gerson_n out_o of_o hugo_n what_o profit_v it_o that_o thou_o be_v lift_v up_o from_o thy_o fall_n by_o baptism_n unless_o thou_o also_o be_v strengthen_v by_o confirmation_n estius_n in_o heb._n 6.1_o say_v the_o apostle_n undoubted_o understand_v that_o lay_v on_o of_o hand_n which_o be_v wont_a to_o be_v administer_v to_o the_o faithful_a present_o after_o baptism_n of_o which_o saint_n luke_n act_v 8._o act_n 19_o that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o sacrament_n of_o confirmation_n whereby_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v give_v to_o person_n baptize_v wherewith_o they_o be_v strengthen_v confess_v the_o name_n of_o christ_n undauntedly_n among_o the_o enemy_n of_o the_o faith_n and_o then_o he_o conclude_v for_o that_o hand_n be_v wont_a to_o be_v lay_v upon_o baptize_v person_n after_o the_o example_n of_o the_o apostle_n universa_fw-la docet_fw-la antiquitas_fw-la all_o antiquity_n teach_v grotius_n in_o heb._n 6.1_o hand_n be_v lay_v upon_o baptize_v person_n to_o obtain_v the_o strengthen_n power_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n and_o on_o person_n ordain_v to_o the_o eldership_n and_o on_o they_o that_o be_v reconcile_v after_o sin_n and_o those_o who_o be_v weak_a in_o body_n and_o on_o new_a marry_a people_n desire_v a_o blessing_n from_o the_o church_n erasmus_n in_o heb._n 6.1_o the_o first_o step_n to_o christianity_n be_v to_o repent_v of_o our_o former_a life_n next_o that_o salvation_n be_v to_o be_v hope_v from_o god_n next_o that_o we_o be_v purge_v in_o baptism_n from_o our_o filth_n next_o that_o by_o lay_v on_o of_o hand_n we_o receive_v the_o holy_a spirit_n heming_n in_o heb._n 6.2_o imposition_n of_o hand_n be_v do_v by_o the_o bishop_n and_o elder_n on_o person_n examine_v he_o shall_v have_v say_v baptise_a prayer_n and_o blessing_n be_v add_v thereto_o at_o this_o lay_v on_o of_o hand_n the_o holy_a spirit_n be_v often_o visible_o give_v obj._n but_o see_v baptism_n and_o lay_v on_o of_o hand_n be_v conjoin_v how_o come_v they_o to_o be_v sever_v answ_n when_o person_n with_o a_o right_a baptism_n come_v back_o from_o heretic_n or_o schismatic_n to_o the_o church_n they_o be_v not_o rebaptise_v but_o receive_v only_o by_o imposition_n of_o hand_n so_o the_o counsel_n of_o arles_n can_v 8._o if_o any_o one_o come_v to_o the_o church_n from_o the_o arrian_n heresy_n let_v the_o preacher_n of_o our_o faith_n ask_v they_o their_o creed_n and_o if_o they_o see_v they_o be_v baptise_a into_o the_o father_n son_n and_o spirit_n let_v they_o only_o lie_v hand_n on_o they_o that_o they_o may_v receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n leo._n epist_n 77._o he_o that_o be_v baptise_a among_o heretic_n let_v he_o not_o be_v rebaptise_v but_o let_v he_o be_v confirm_v by_o lay_v on_o of_o hand_n with_o call_v upon_o the_o holy_a spirit_n yet_o be_v not_o this_o rite_n use_v every_o where_o for_o gregory_n de_fw-mi consecrat_fw-mi cap._n 4._o say_v the_o west_n be_v wont_a to_o receive_v such_o as_o return_v to_o the_o church_n from_o heretic_n by_o imposition_n of_o hand_n but_o the_o eastern_a part_n be_v wont_a to_o receive_v they_o by_o the_o anoint_v of_o oil_n aug._n against_o the_o donatist_n lib._n 5._o c._n 23._o give_v a_o reason_n hereof_o and_o say_v if_o lay_v on_o of_o hand_n shall_v not_o be_v use_v to_o one_o come_v from_o heresy_n he_o will_v be_v judge_v to_o be_v without_o all_o fault_n but_o for_o the_o couple_v of_o love_n hand_n be_v lay_v on_o heretic_n amend_v 2_o when_o upon_o necessity_n any_o man_n be_v baptise_a of_o a_o ordinary_a man_n that_o the_o baptism_n may_v be_v approve_v and_o confirm_v the_o person_n baptise_a was_z bring_v to_o the_o bishop_n that_o he_o may_v be_v confirm_v council_n eliberitanum_fw-la can._n 18._o a_o believer_n and_o in_o case_n of_o necessity_n one_o instruct_v in_o the_o faith_n may_v baptise_v so_o that_o if_o he_o that_o shall_v be_v so_o baptise_a shall_v live_v he_o bring_v he_o to_o the_o bishop_n that_o by_o imposition_n of_o hand_n he_o may_v be_v perfect_v 3_o a_o three_o reason_n be_v mention_v by_o hierom_n in_o his_o dialogue_n against_o the_o luciferian_o he_o say_v the_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n be_v that_o the_o bishop_n be_v about_o to_o lay_v hand_n to_o the_o call_n on_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n he_o make_v haste_n to_o those_o that_o be_v baptise_a in_o less_o city_n by_o elder_n and_o deacon_n the_o meaning_n be_v as_o be_v after_o express_v when_o the_o bishop_n know_v they_o believe_v right_o and_o be_v lawful_o baptise_a he_o make_v haste_n to_o lay_v hand_n on_o they_o and_o to_o call_v upon_o the_o spirit_n that_o they_o may_v persevere_v in_o that_o faith_n from_o all_o these_o custom_n not_o only_o the_o common_a people_n but_o also_o sundry_a bishop_n long_o before_o hieroms_n time_n come_v to_o this_o opinion_n as_o if_o baptism_n be_v without_o the_o spirit_n and_o that_o the_o spirit_n be_v first_o give_v and_o receive_v when_o the_o bishop_n to_o the_o call_n on_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n lay_v hand_n on_o the_o person_n baptise_a which_o hierom_n confute_v and_o prove_v that_o baptism_n be_v not_o without_o the_o holy_a spirit_n answer_v to_o objection_n obj._n 1_o in_o the_o lay_n hand_n on_o the_o samaritan_n there_o be_v visible_a gift_n convey_v act._n 8.18_o simon_n see_v that_o through_o lay_v on_o of_o hand_n the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v give_v act._n 19.6_o when_o paul_n have_v lay_v his_o hand_n on_o the_o twelve_o they_o speak_v with_o tongue_n and_o prophesy_v but_o in_o imposition_n that_o be_v or_o shall_v be_v by_o the_o apostle_n of_o the_o church_n there_o be_v no_o visible_a gift_n give_v therefore_o that_o imposition_n in_o scripture_n and_o you_o be_v not_o the_o same_o answ_n 1_o that_o god_n do_v sometime_o convey_v visible_a gift_n after_o imposition_n of_o hand_n to_o honour_n it_o be_v true_a yet_o be_v these_o visible_a gift_n no_o more_o part_n of_o the_o ordinance_n much_o less_o essentiality_n thereof_o than_o philip_n sudden_a surreption_n or_o catch_v away_o by_o the_o spirit_n from_o the_o eunuch_n be_v any_o part_n of_o the_o eunuch_n baptism_n act._n 8.39_o 40._o this_o miraculous_a surreption_n be_v a_o confirmation_n to_o the_o eunuch_n so_o when_o the_o twelve_o speak_v with_o tongue_n after_o baptism_n and_o lay_v on_o of_o hand_n it_o be_v only_o a_o confirmation_n to_o they_o of_o the_o truth_n of_o that_o doctrine_n and_o powerfulness_n of_o that_o person_n into_o who_o name_n they_o be_v baptize_v 2_o the_o apostle_n peter_n and_o john_n act_v 8.16_o 17._o will_v never_o have_v come_v down_o to_o samaria_n for_o to_o do_v miracle_n for_o philip_n have_v there_o wrought_v miracle_n abundant_o act_v 8.7_o in_o cast_v out_o devil_n heal_v palsy_n lameness_n etc._n etc._n therefore_o they_o come_v for_o some_o other_o end_n which_o be_v that_o the_o samaritan_n may_v receive_v the_o spirit_n object_n but_o here_o be_v visible_a gift_n give_v simon_n see_v that_o through_o lay_v on_o of_o the_o apostle_n hand_n the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v give_v answ_n there_o be_v a_o sight_n of_o the_o understanding_n as_o well_o as_o of_o the_o eye_n simon_n may_v see_v the_o holy_a ghost_n give_v while_o he_o behold_v the_o operation_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o prayer_n self-denial_n mortification_n yet_o not_o one_o gift_n give_v visible_a to_o the_o bodily_a eye_n but_o if_o visible_a gift_n conspicuous_a to_o the_o bodily_a eye_n be_v give_v they_o be_v no_o part_n of_o the_o ordinance_n but_o crown_n and_o ornament_n thereof_o the_o holy_a ghost_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v give_v not_o only_o in_o gift_n of_o tongue_n and_o healing_n but_o also_o in_o melt_n of_o heart_n prophecy_n etc._n etc._n 2_o it_o be_v a_o mistake_n to_o say_v that_o in_o the_o apostolical_a imposition_n always_o visible_a gift_n be_v convey_v such_o as_o the_o natural_a eye_n can_v behold_v for_o paul_n lay_v his_o hand_n on_o timothy_n and_o have_v nothing_o convey_v save_o inward_a gift_n
must_v be_v just_o rule_v in_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n 2_o sam._n 23.3_o 3_o god_n be_v wont_a to_o deal_v well_o with_o such_o as_o fear_v he_o exod._n 1_o 20_o 21._o god_n deal_v well_o with_o the_o midwife_n because_o they_o fear_v god_n deut._n 5.29_o oh_o that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o heart_n in_o they_o to_o fear_v i_o that_o it_o may_v be_v well_o with_o they_o neh._n 1.11_o eccles_n 8.12_o i_o know_v it_o shall_v be_v well_o with_o they_o that_o fear_v god_n which_o fear_v before_o he_o but_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v well_o with_o the_o wicked_a why_o because_o he_o fear_v not_o before_o god_n mal._n 2.5_o my_o covenant_n be_v with_o levi_n of_o life_n and_o peace_n and_o i_o give_v they_o to_o he_o for_o the_o fear_n wherewith_o he_o fear_v i_o and_o be_v afraid_a before_o my_o name_n luke_n 1.50_o his_o mercy_n be_v on_o they_o that_o fear_v he_o from_o generation_n to_o generation_n deut._n 6.18_o he_o that_o fear_v god_n shall_v come_v forth_o out_o of_o all_o trouble_n eccles_n 7.18_o 4_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n be_v a_o special_a mean_n to_o lengthen_v our_o day_n in_o this_o world_n deut._n 6.2_o that_o thou_o may_v fear_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n to_o keep_v all_o his_o statute_n that_o thy_o day_n may_v be_v prolong_v now_o the_o reason_n why_o god_n fear_v lengthen_v our_o day_n be_v because_o it_o make_v a_o man_n take_v heed_n of_o such_o sin_n as_o will_v cut_v off_o life_n prov._n 10.27_o the_o fear_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v a_o fountain_n of_o life_n to_o depart_v from_o the_o snare_n of_o death_n see_v the_o contrary_a threaten_n to_o wicked_a man_n eccles_n 8.13_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v well_o with_o the_o wicked_a neither_o shall_v he_o prolong_v his_o day_n which_o be_v as_o a_o shadow_n why_o because_o he_o fear_v not_o before_o god_n 5_o god_n fear_v be_v one_o of_o the_o first_o grace_n that_o show_v itself_o in_o the_o soul_n hence_o call_v the_o beginning_n of_o wisdom_n job_n 28.28_o and_o they_o that_o have_v it_o be_v say_v to_o have_v a_o good_a understanding_n psalm_n 111.10_o deut._n 10.12_o what_o do_v the_o lord_n require_v of_o thou_o but_o to_o fear_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n etc._n etc._n 6_o god_n have_v excellent_a love_a kindness_n lay_v up_o for_o those_o that_o fear_v he_o see_v this_o 1_o in_o spiritual_a mercy_n as_o 1_o understanding_n god_n secret_n psalm_n 25.14_o the_o secret_a of_o the_o lord_n be_v with_o they_o that_o fear_v he_o 2_o pitiful_a affection_n as_o in_o a_o father_n towards_o his_o child_n psalm_n 103.11_o so_o the_o lord_n pity_v they_o that_o fear_v he_o 3_o healing_n and_o comfort_n mal._n 4.2_o unto_o you_o that_o fear_v my_o name_n shall_v the_o son_n of_o righteousness_n arise_v with_o heal_v under_o his_o wing_n 2_o see_v it_o in_o temporal_a mercy_n as_o 1_o strong_a confidence_n in_o evil_a time_n prov._n 14.26_o in_o the_o fear_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v strong_a confidence_n which_o be_v ground_v upon_o promise_n of_o deliverance_n psalm_n 85.9_o sure_o his_o salvation_n be_v nigh_o they_o that_o fear_v he_o 2_o a_o special_a eye_n of_o providence_n for_o the_o provide_v outward_a thing_n for_o such_o psalm_n 31_o 18_o 19_o behold_v the_o eye_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v on_o they_o that_o fear_v he_o to_o deliver_v their_o soul_n from_o death_n and_o to_o keep_v they_o alive_a in_o famine_n psalm_n 34.9_o o_o fear_v the_o lord_n you_o his_o saint_n for_o there_o be_v no_o want_n to_o they_o that_o fear_v he_o psalm_n 111.5_o he_o have_v give_v meat_n to_o they_o that_o fear_v he_o he_o will_v ever_o be_v mindful_a of_o his_o covenant_n q.d._n its_o part_n of_o god_n covenant_n to_o give_v meat_n to_o they_o that_o fear_v he_o meat_n be_v put_v for_o all_o other_o provision_n 3_o there_o be_v much_o contentedness_n of_o mind_n come_v along_o with_o this_o grace_n of_o god_n fear_n in_o they_o that_o have_v it_o prov._n 15.16_o better_a be_v a_o little_a with_o the_o fear_n of_o the_o lord_n then_o great_a revenue_n and_o trouble_v therewith_o pro._n 19.23_o the_o fear_n of_o the_o lord_n tend_v to_o life_n and_o he_o that_o have_v it_o shall_v abide_v satisfy_v psalm_n 7.16_o 4_o it_o be_v a_o mean_a to_o obtain_v riches_n honour_n and_o life_n every_o man_n wish_n for_o these_o three_o thing_n oh_o than_o get_v god_n fear_n pro._n 22.4_o by_o humility_n and_o the_o fear_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v riches_n and_o honour_n and_o life_n 2_o use_n trial_n whether_o we_o have_v god_n fear_v in_o we_o 1_o when_o we_o think_v nothing_o too_o good_a for_o god_n but_o will_v let_v it_o go_v rather_o than_o sin_n gen._n 22.12_o lay_v not_o thy_o hand_n upon_o the_o lad_n for_o now_o i_o know_v thou_o fear_v god_n see_v thou_o have_v not_o withhold_v thy_o only_a son_n 2_o when_o we_o fear_v to_o do_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v of_o bad_a report_n 1_o cor._n 6.1_o dare_v any_o of_o you_o meaning_n christian_n go_v to_o law_n before_o the_o unjust_a and_o not_o before_o the_o saint_n neh._n 5.9_o ought_v we_o not_o to_o walk_v in_o the_o fear_n of_o the_o lord_n because_o of_o the_o heathen_a 3_o when_o we_o fear_v not_o the_o great_a of_o man_n in_o opposition_n to_o god_n exod._n 1.15_o 16._o the_o king_n bid_v the_o hebrew_n midwife_n kill_v the_o male_a child_n but_o they_o will_v not_o obey_v the_o king_n why_o be_v it_o the_o text_n vers_fw-la 17._o give_v the_o reason_n because_o they_o fear_v god_n they_o will_v not_o obey_v the_o king_n how_o do_v the_o three_o child_n out_o of_o fear_n to_o god_n not_o fear_n nabuchadnezzar_n his_o burn_a fiery_a furnace_n dan._n 3.17_o 18_o 28._o the_o parent_n of_o moses_n hide_v moses_n three_o month_n and_o they_o not_o afraid_a of_o the_o king_n commandment_n heb._n 11.23_o 4_o when_o we_o be_v fearful_a of_o the_o private_a and_o secret_a stir_n of_o corruption_n in_o our_o own_o heart_n job_n 31.1_o 2._o job_n so_o apprehend_v god_n eye_n that_o he_o dare_v not_o have_v or_o harbour_v a_o lustful_a thought_n see_v vers_fw-la 4._o this_o fear_n of_o god_n keep_v he_o from_o lift_v up_o his_o hand_n against_o the_o fatherless_a when_o he_o see_v his_o help_n in_o the_o gate_n for_o destruction_n from_o god_n be_v a_o terror_n unto_o he_o vers_n 21.23_o deut._n 15.9_o 10._o god_n fear_n will_v be_v oppose_v proud_a revengeful_a unclean_a and_o hypocritical_a thought_n in_o the_o soul_n 5_o when_o hope_n or_o proffer_v of_o gain_n will_v not_o make_v we_o sin_n against_o god_n peter_n will_v not_o take_v magus_n his_o money_n act_v 8.20_o nor_o elisha_n naaman_n talent_n 2_o king_n 5._o why_o he_o know_v in_o his_o conscience_n it_o be_v no_o time_n for_o it_o contrary_n in_o balaam_n how_o fain_o will_v he_o have_v be_v finger_v balak_v gold_n so_o judas_n demas_n 6_o when_o we_o will_v not_o deliberate_o venture_v upon_o sin_n for_o fear_n of_o loss_n gen._n 39.9_o how_o can_v i_o do_v this_o great_a evil_a and_o sin_n against_o god_n 1_o king_n 22.13_o 14._o micaiah_n dare_v not_o flatter_v the_o king_n as_o the_o false_a prophet_n do_v john_n baptist_n dare_v not_o forbear_v herod_n sin_n though_o the_o prince_n favour_n lie_v on_o one_o side_n and_o the_o loss_n of_o his_o life_n or_o hazard_v thereof_o on_o the_o other_o mat._n 14.3_o such_o a_o man_n will_v not_o be_v draw_v to_o sin_n for_o fear_n of_o offend_v a_o wife_n or_o husband_n where_o god_n fear_v be_v there_o will_v be_v a_o choice_n of_o affliction_n rather_o than_o iniquity_n 7_o when_o we_o be_v afraid_a of_o do_v any_o thing_n with_o a_o doubt_a conscience_n rom._n 14.22_o 23._o 8_o when_o we_o be_v afraid_a of_o the_o least_o evil_n carnal_a man_n for_o shame_n of_o the_o world_n may_v avoid_v gross_a evil_n but_o where_o god_n fear_v be_v the_o soul_n be_v afraid_a of_o small_a sin_n 1_o sam_n 24.5_o even_o for_o cut_v the_o skirt_n of_o saul_n garment_n how_o much_o more_o be_v he_o of_o hurt_v saul_n person_n 1_o sam._n 26.9_o it_o be_v say_v of_o a_o godly_a man_n that_o he_o keep_v his_o hand_n from_o do_v any_o evil_n isai_n 56.2_o 9_o when_o we_o be_v afraid_a of_o sinful_a temptation_n and_o occasion_n gen._n 39.10_o joseph_n will_v not_o hearken_v to_o his_o mistress_n to_o lie_v by_o she_o or_o to_o be_v with_o she_o prov._n 5.8_o come_v not_o nigh_o the_o door_n of_o her_o house_n hos_fw-la 4.15_o that_o judah_n may_v not_o offend_v with_o israel_n calve-worship_n the_o prophet_n bid_v they_o not_o to_o come_v to_o gilgal_n or_o beth-aven_a where_o the_o calf_n be_v god_n will_v not_o keep_v we_o from_o sin_n if_o we_o do_v not_o keep_v ourselves_o from_o the_o occasion_n of_o it_o he_o that_o venture_v upon_o the_o occasion_n of_o sin_n
love_n of_o sinful_a correspondency_n make_v unhappy_a discovery_n this_o way_n mic._n 7.5_o trust_v not_o in_o a_o friend_n put_v not_o confidence_n in_o a_o brother_n 4_o beware_v of_o purpose_v to_o turn_v back_o into_o the_o way_n of_o error_n because_o of_o the_o opposition_n we_o find_v in_o god_n way_n if_o once_o we_o put_v our_o hand_n to_o god_n plough_n we_o be_v not_o to_o look_v back_o luke_n 9.62_o 5_o beware_v of_o a_o cowardly_a give_v way_n to_o the_o opposer_n of_o the_o truth_n jeremy_n complain_v there_o be_v some_o be_v not_o valiant_a for_o the_o truth_n jer._n 9.3_o contrary_a paul_n will_v not_o give_v place_n by_o subjection_n to_o the_o false_a teacher_n no_o not_o for_o a_o hour_n gal._n 2.5_o that_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n may_v continue_v if_o any_o man_n shall_v entrench_v upon_o your_o name_n estate_n relation_n you_o will_v contend_v against_o they_o and_o not_o spare_v your_o purse_n in_o this_o case_n let_v we_o be_v like_o mind_a in_o matter_n of_o religion_n so_o nehemiah_n c._n 6.9_o 11_o 15._o to_o this_o the_o apostle_n exhort_v phil._n 1.27_o 28._o judas_n 3_o it_o be_v well_o say_v by_o luther_n i_o will_v not_o fly_v god_n assist_v nor_o leave_v the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o the_o front_n of_o the_o battle_n i_o have_v rather_o burn_v among_o the_o live_a coal_n than_o stink_v half_o alive_a if_o not_o altogether_o dead_a reason_n thus_o either_o the_o cause_n be_v god_n or_o not_o if_o not_o why_o stir_v we_o a_o foot_n in_o it_o if_o it_o be_v why_o go_v we_o not_o thorough_a with_o it_o 6_o let_v all_o that_o be_v godly_a be_v unite_v among_o themselves_o if_o not_o in_o a_o same_o opinion_n yet_o in_o a_o charitable_a affection_n and_o unite_a conjunction_n to_o oppose_v wickedness_n and_o to_o stand_v for_o holiness_n divide_v and_o overcome_v be_v the_o old_a maxim_n there_o be_v a_o story_n of_o a_o father_n that_o give_v a_o quiver_n of_o arrow_n to_o his_o son_n and_o bid_v they_o break_v they_o be_v unite_v in_o the_o quiver_n but_o they_o can_v not_o he_o bid_v each_o of_o they_o after_o to_o take_v out_o a_o single_a arrow_n and_o then_o any_o one_o of_o they_o can_v break_v they_o he_o make_v the_o application_n that_o so_o long_o as_o his_o son_n be_v unite_v none_o can_v hurt_v they_o but_o when_o disjoined_a and_o sever_v one_o from_o another_o they_o become_v a_o prey_n to_o all_o i_o may_v apply_v this_o fit_o to_o all_o saint_n who_o be_v the_o subject_n of_o the_o world_n rage_n psalm_n 133.1_o 3_o use_v consolation_n to_o saint_n under_o much_o opposition_n they_o in_o this_o world_n have_v little_a peace_n but_o in_o heaven_n there_o remain_v a_o rest_n for_o they_o heb._n 4.10_o 11._o rev._n 14.13_o yet_o as_o the_o weather-beaten_a mariner_n in_o sight_n of_o his_o haven_n be_v comfort_v in_o the_o hope_n of_o his_o arrival_n therein_o where_o he_o shall_v have_v a_o end_n of_o all_o storm_n so_o we_o be_v toss_v under_o a_o continual_a storm_n shall_v comfort_v ourselves_o by_o faith_n and_o hope_n in_o the_o haven_n of_o our_o rest_n to_o these_o contentious_a person_n that_o obey_v not_o the_o truth_n but_o oppose_v the_o professor_n of_o it_o there_o will_v be_v tribulation_n rom._n 2.7_o 8._o but_o to_o thou_o who_o by_o a_o patient_a continuance_n in_o well-doing_n go_v on_o there_o will_v be_v peace_n christian_n be_v apt_a sometime_o to_o grow_v passionate_a under_o the_o opposition_n of_o the_o world_n jer._n 15.10_o woe_n be_v i_o say_v jeremy_n that_o thou_o have_v bear_v i_o a_o man_n of_o contention_n and_o strife_n to_o the_o whole_a earth_n but_o this_o be_v our_o comfort_n 2_o thes_n 1.6_o 7._o it_o be_v a_o righteous_a thing_n with_o god_n to_o recompense_v tribulation_n to_o they_o that_o trouble_v you_o and_o to_o you_o who_o be_v trouble_v rest_n with_o we_o when_o the_o lord_n jesus_n shall_v be_v reveal_v from_o heaven_n with_o his_o mighty_a angel_n v._o 35._o for_o i_o be_o come_v to_o set_v a_o man_n at_o variance_n against_o his_o father_n and_o the_o daughter_n against_o her_o mother_n and_o the_o daughter_n in_o law_n against_o her_o mother_n in_o law_n obj._n but_o what_o seem_v more_o monstrous_a than_o this_o text_n christ_n seem_v to_o overturn_v all_o law_n which_o ordain_v honour_n and_o love_n of_o child_n to_o their_o parent_n christ_n contrary_a come_v to_o set_v they_o at_o variance_n answ_n the_o near_a end_n of_o christ_n his_o come_n be_v by_o his_o doctrine_n to_o unite_v heart_n but_o the_o separation_n mention_v here_o be_v a_o accidental_a end_n the_o world_n can_v endure_v the_o gospel_n but_o hate_v all_o that_o receive_v it_o so_o that_o the_o argument_n be_v he_o that_o stir_v up_o strife_n and_o variance_n be_v guilty_a of_o sin_n but_o christ_n do_v so_o therefore_o he_o be_v guilty_a of_o sin_n answ_n the_o proposition_n be_v true_a by_o itself_o the_o assumption_n be_v true_a only_a by_o accident_n else_o it_o be_v false_a for_o what_o a_o bless_a peace_n shall_v we_o have_v will_v every_o man_n receive_v the_o gospel_n obj._n it_o be_v say_v of_o john_n baptist_n he_o shall_v turn_v the_o heart_n of_o the_o father_n to_o the_o child_n and_o the_o disobedient_a to_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o just_a answ_n this_o be_v the_o proper_a end_n of_o the_o gospel_n if_o wicked_a man_n hinder_v it_o not_o but_o the_o contrary_a through_o wicked_a man_n malice_n oft_o fall_v out_o god_n child_n may_v retort_v those_o word_n which_o eliah_n do_v to_o ahab_n to_o the_o wicked_a of_o the_o world_n 1_o king_n 18.17_o 18._o be_v not_o thou_o he_o that_o trouble_v israel_n eliah_n answer_v i_o have_v not_o trouble_v israel_n but_o thou_o and_o thy_o father_n house_n in_o that_o you_o have_v forsake_v the_o commandment_n of_o the_o lord_n as_o joshua_n say_v to_o achan_n jos_n 7.25_o why_o have_v thou_o trouble_v we_o the_o lord_n shall_v trouble_v thou_o this_o day_n the_o cause_n why_o the_o world_n trouble_v the_o saint_n be_v because_o they_o witness_v against_o their_o evil_n john_n 7.7_o the_o world_n can_v hate_v you_o but_o i_o it_o hate_v because_o i_o testify_v of_o it_o that_o the_o work_v thereof_o be_v evil_a there_o be_v no_o bond_n so_o straight_o which_o the_o gospel_n will_v not_o break_v in_o sunder_o through_o the_o corruption_n of_o wicked_a man_n heart_n see_v it_o jer_n 12.6_o for_o even_o thy_o brethren_n and_o the_o house_n of_o thy_o father_n even_o they_o have_v deal_v treacherous_o with_o thou_o they_o have_v call_v a_o multitude_n after_o thou_o believe_v they_o not_o though_o they_o speak_v fair_a word_n unto_o thou_o one_o part_n of_o the_o trial_n of_o christian_n be_v to_o be_v exercise_v with_o contention_n when_o the_o lord_n call_v his_o people_n from_o the_o wicked_a of_o the_o world_n 2_o cor._n 6.15_o 16_o 17._o come_v out_o from_o among_o they_o and_o touch_v not_o the_o unclean_a thing_n and_o i_o will_v be_v your_o god_n and_o you_o shall_v be_v my_o son_n the_o world_n think_v this_o a_o intolerable_a wrong_n to_o make_v a_o departure_n the_o mother_n be_v angry_a with_o her_o daughter_n for_o it_o and_o the_o daughter_n with_o the_o mother_n yea_o sometime_o a_o church_n with_o a_o member_n and_o cast_v he_o out_o for_o this_o because_o he_o will_v preserve_v his_o conscience_n pure_a church-communion_n be_v a_o high_a privilege_n but_o to_o sin_n against_o conscience_n be_v too_o high_a a_o price_n for_o it_o v._o 36._o and_o a_o man_n foe_n shall_v be_v they_o of_o his_o own_o household_n christ_n have_v in_o part_n set_v forth_o the_o variance_n the_o gospel_n bring_v not_o of_o itself_o for_o christ_n be_v the_o prince_n of_o peace_n esa_n 9.6_o the_o gospel_n of_o itself_o be_v the_o word_n of_o reconciliation_n 2_o cor._n 5.19_o believer_n be_v the_o child_n of_o peace_n and_o follow_v after_o it_o 1_o pet._n 3.11_o but_o by_o accident_n in_o that_o wicked_a man_n will_v not_o suffer_v their_o superstition_n and_o wickedness_n to_o be_v reprove_v he_o come_v to_o close_v up_o all_o that_o a_o man_n enemy_n shall_v be_v they_o of_o his_o own_o household_n the_o unconverted_a wife_n or_o servant_n will_v oppose_v the_o convert_a husband_n and_o master_n as_o christ_n have_v prepare_v his_o disciple_n in_o the_o former_a verse_n against_o the_o enmity_n of_o kindred_n and_o neighbour_n which_o word_n be_v in_o part_n take_v out_o of_o jer._n 9.4_o take_v you_o heed_n every_o one_o of_o his_o neighbour_n and_o trust_v you_o not_o in_o any_o brother_n for_o every_o brother_n will_v utter_o supplant_v and_o every_o neighbour_n will_v walk_v with_o slander_n so_o now_o christ_n prepare_v his_o disciple_n against_o all_o enmity_n which_o shall_v be_v in_o their_o own_o house_n some_o time_n the_o child_n be_v angry_a with_o
his_o father_n because_o he_o keep_v he_o in_o from_o profaneness_n the_o servant_n be_v angry_a with_o his_o master_n and_o will_v not_o tarry_v with_o he_o because_o he_o be_v too_o strict_a how_o oft_o do_v the_o husband_n rise_v against_o the_o wife_n for_o this_o job_n wife_n upbraid_v her_o husband_n with_o the_o business_n of_o his_o integrity_n do_v thou_o yet_o retain_v thy_o integrity_n michal_n scoff_v at_o david_n for_o his_o dance_n before_o the_o ark_n 2_o sam._n 6._o v._o 37._o he_o that_o love_v father_n or_o mother_n more_o than_o i_o be_v not_o worthy_a of_o i_o and_o he_o that_o love_v son_n or_o daughter_n more_o than_o i_o be_v not_o worthy_a of_o i_o here_o be_v a_o consolation_n against_o the_o former_a evil_n to_o wit_n he_o that_o shall_v leave_v relation_n and_o friend_n for_o christ_n christ_n will_v count_v such_o a_o man_n worthy_a of_o he_o christ_n add_v these_o word_n above_o i_o least_o any_o shall_v think_v christ_n to_o forbid_v love_n of_o parent_n we_o may_v love_v they_o but_o not_o above_o christ_n if_o we_o do_v christ_n will_v not_o think_v we_o worthy_a of_o he_o that_o be_v he_o will_v not_o account_v such_o in_o the_o number_n of_o his_o disciple_n the_o sum_n be_v christ_n will_v have_v his_o disciple_n suffer_v all_o manner_n of_o extremity_n rather_o than_o to_o be_v take_v off_o from_o faith_n and_o obedience_n to_o he_o and_o he_o that_o will_v not_o suffer_v this_o be_v not_o worthy_a of_o he_o that_o be_v he_o be_v unworthy_a to_o be_v call_v a_o christian_a neither_o have_v he_o any_o part_n in_o his_o kingdom_n of_o grace_n or_o glory_n under_o father_n and_o mother_n he_o mean_v all_o relation_n whatsoever_o whether_o magistrate_n master_n husband_n kinsman_n friend_n and_o all_o the_o good_a thing_n we_o have_v or_o hope_v to_o have_v from_o they_o as_o wealth_n honour_n land_n it_o may_v seem_v very_o sharp_a that_o we_o must_v make_v they_o who_o be_v in_o the_o same_o society_n with_o we_o enemy_n christ_n therefore_o tell_v we_o that_o upon_o no_o other_o term_n we_o can_v be_v his_o disciple_n therefore_o we_o must_v see_v the_o price_n of_o be_v christ_n disciple_n the_o sum_n be_v christ_n be_v to_o be_v love_v sovereign_o and_o every_o creature_n subordinate_o luke_o 14.26_o if_o our_o love_n to_o any_o creature_n hinder_v we_o from_o follow_v christ_n let_v we_o learn_v to_o count_v it_o dung_n for_o christ_n gal._n 6.14_o phil_n 3.8_o when_o a_o case_n come_v that_o either_o god_n be_v to_o be_v deny_v or_o a_o creature_n then_o be_v a_o creature_n to_o be_v deny_v the_o reverence_n of_o parent_n be_v to_o be_v cast_v off_o if_o it_o can_v stand_v with_o the_o reverence_n of_o god_n the_o will_n of_o god_n be_v know_v we_o must_v not_o dispute_v of_o law_n or_o prescription_n but_o we_o must_v obey_v god_n command_n without_o any_o deliberation_n because_o neither_o the_o pope_n parent_n or_o caesar_n have_v this_o title_n i_o be_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n luth_n in_o gen._n 27._o love_n be_v a_o affection_n whereby_o the_o soul_n be_v carry_v out_o to_o enjoy_v something_o it_o esteem_v to_o be_v good_a there_o be_v three_o thing_n in_o love_n 1_o affection_n whereby_o we_o be_v incline_v to_o some_o know_a good_a 2_o desire_n that_o we_o may_v be_v unite_v to_o it_o 3_o joy_n whereby_o we_o rest_v in_o that_o good_a thing_n obtain_v these_o three_o be_v in_o every_o ordinary_a subordinate_a good_a but_o in_o the_o supreme_a good_a all_o the_o appetite_n and_o affection_n of_o saint_n be_v carry_v sovereign_o to_o he_o and_o with_o much_o joy_n rest_n in_o he_o if_o we_o love_v not_o christ_n sovereign_o we_o love_v he_o only_o as_o a_o creature_n neither_o be_v it_o enough_o to_o love_v the_o lord_n jesus_n better_a than_o many_o thing_n if_o there_o be_v any_o thing_n we_o love_v above_o he_o or_o equal_a with_o he_o whatsoever_o thing_n we_o so_o love_v we_o make_v a_o idol_n see_v my_o treatise_n of_o the_o love_n of_o christ_n to_o love_n christ_n thus_o 1_o beware_v you_o be_v not_o ensnare_v with_o the_o fear_n of_o man_n or_o any_o hardship_n 2_o nor_o with_o favour_n of_o man_n v._o 38._o and_o he_o that_o take_v not_o his_o cross_n and_o follow_v after_o i_o be_v not_o worthy_a of_o i_o as_o in_o the_o former_a verse_n we_o be_v to_o forgo_v any_o thing_n for_o god_n love_v he_o sovereign_o so_o be_v we_o require_v to_o suffer_v any_o thing_n for_o he_o love_v he_o undivide_o he_o that_o take_v not_o his_o cross_n by_o cross_n he_o mean_v every_o affliction_n that_o lie_v in_o the_o way_n of_o duty_n whether_o it_o be_v a_o office_n which_o can_v be_v have_v with_o a_o good_a conscience_n or_o the_o favour_n of_o this_o or_o that_o man_n many_o give_v a_o lift_n at_o the_o cross_n but_o find_v it_o heavy_a they_o let_v it_o fall_v down_o again_o other_o think_v when_o they_o have_v take_v up_o some_o one_o or_o few_o cross_n they_o have_v do_v enough_o whereas_o take_v up_o the_o cross_n be_v a_o continual_a duty_n hence_o it_o be_v put_v in_o the_o present_a tense_n and_o luke_n say_v it_o be_v a_o duty_n daily_o to_o be_v do_v luk._n 9.23_o for_o what_o week_n or_o month_n be_v there_o but_o if_o a_o man_n will_v be_v true_a to_o his_o conscience_n he_o shall_v find_v some_o cross_n or_o other_o lie_v in_o his_o way_n christ_n do_v not_o mean_a only_a crucify_a or_o the_o death_n of_o the_o cross_n which_o every_o christian_a for_o christ_n be_v call_v to_o take_v up_o but_o also_o christ_n mean_v all_o other_o cross_n this_o death_n of_o crucify_a be_v usual_a among_o the_o roman_n invent_v by_o cruelty_n itself_o if_o cicero_n may_v be_v believe_v among_o who_o the_o word_n come_v to_o be_v use_v for_o all_o kind_n of_o disprofit_v or_o suffering_n as_o the_o phrase_n abi_fw-la in_o malam_fw-la crucem_fw-la denote_v and_o the_o latin_a word_n crucior_fw-la now_o these_o word_n of_o take_v the_o cross_n and_o take_v up_o the_o cross_n mention_v luk._n 9.23_o and_o that_o of_o bear_v the_o cross_n luk._n 14.27_o be_v the_o word_n use_v in_o the_o suffering_n of_o christ_n matth._n 27.32_o mark_v 15.21_o where_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v use_v as_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v joh._n 19.17_o to_o show_v that_o the_o manner_n of_o call_v suffering_n by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o cross_n be_v take_v from_o that_o suffering_n upon_o the_o cross_n so_o that_o to_o take_v up_o the_o cross_n be_v to_o have_v a_o disposition_n for_o all_o manner_n of_o suffering_n for_o christ_n whether_o prison_n death_n or_o banishment_n so_o paul_n act_v 20.24.21.13_o so_o peter_n though_o he_o go_v in_o his_o own_o strength_n yet_o the_o bent_n of_o his_o heart_n be_v right_a mark_v 14.31_o luk._n 22.33_o lord_n i_o be_o ready_a to_o go_v with_o thou_o both_o into_o prison_n and_o to_o death_n christ_n call_v these_o suffering_n by_o the_o ignominious_a name_n of_o the_o cross_n that_o christian_n may_v not_o expect_v worldly_a glory_n and_o domination_n but_o rather_o scoff_v and_o mock_n and_o crucifying_n moreover_o in_o that_o christ_n say_v we_o must_v take_v up_o the_o cross_n it_o denote_v unto_o we_o a_o voluntary_a obedience_n that_o we_o neither_o fret_v at_o god_n or_o man_n who_o have_v be_v any_o way_n instrumental_a in_o our_o suffering_n this_o shall_v something_o quiet_a our_o mind_n that_o as_o christ_n adjudge_v all_o his_o disciple_n to_o the_o cross_n so_o do_v he_o we_o to_o our_o cross_n and_o in_o that_o christ_n say_v his_o cross_n he_o mean_v not_o that_o we_o shall_v create_v cross_n for_o ourselves_o but_o only_o take_v from_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n &_o bear_v upon_o our_o shoulder_n those_o which_o the_o lord_n lay_v on_o we_o we_o be_v ready_a to_o think_v our_o own_o cross_n heavy_a than_o other_o cross_n but_o if_o all_o the_o cross_n of_o the_o world_n be_v lay_v on_o a_o heap_n and_o a_o equal_a dividend_n be_v make_v of_o they_o i_o question_v whether_o thy_o share_n will_v not_o come_v to_o more_o some_o man_n can_v bear_v poverty_n but_o can_v away_o with_o infamy_n or_o disgrace_n other_o will_v suffer_v disgrace_n but_o not_o imprisonment_n other_o imprisonment_n but_o not_o corporal_a punishment_n but_o a_o christian_a that_o be_v worthy_a of_o christ_n must_v take_v up_o all_o mean_v to_o take_v up_o the_o cross_n 1_o think_v often_o of_o it_o resolve_v with_o thyself_o thou_o must_v not_o live_v always_o in_o peace_n but_o there_o will_v a_o change_v come_v when_o thou_o must_v part_v with_o thy_o dear_a comfort_n 1_o pet._n 4.12_o think_v not_o strange_a concern_v the_o fiery_a trial_n be_v think_v what_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n may_v cost_v thou_o before_o
do_v these_o thing_n shall_v live_v by_o they_o and_o live_v in_o they_o gal._n 3.12_o contrary_o fail_v in_o one_o point_n and_o be_v under_o the_o curse_n gal._n 3.10_o curse_a be_v every_o one_o that_o continue_v not_o in_o all_o thing_n that_o be_v write_v in_o the_o law_n to_o do_v they_o a_o sinner_n be_v not_o justify_v unless_o he_o be_v condemn_v viz._n by_o the_o law_n he_o be_v not_o quicken_v unless_o he_o be_v slay_v he_o do_v not_o ascend_v to_o heaven_n unless_o he_o descend_v into_o hell_n luth._o tom._n 2.57_o thus_o no_o man_n be_v ever_o justify_v save_v adam_n in_o his_o state_n of_o innocency_n and_o jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o angel_n by_o this_o righteousness_n no_o man_n live_v be_v justify_v job_n 9.20_o if_o i_o justify_v myself_o my_o own_o mouth_n shall_v condemn_v i_o if_o i_o say_v i_o be_o perfect_a it_o shall_v also_o prove_v i_o perverse_a also_o v._n 30.31_o if_o i_o wash_v myself_o with_o snow_n water_n and_o make_v my_o hand_n never_o so_o clean_a yet_o shall_v thou_o plunge_v i_o in_o the_o ditch_n and_o my_o own_o clothes_n shall_v abhor_v i_o the_o meaning_n be_v if_o i_o be_v the_o pure_a man_n alive_a and_o god_n shall_v call_v i_o to_o his_o tribunal_n i_o must_v needs_o condemn_v myself_o and_o whatsoever_o be_v near_o unto_o i_o will_v condemn_v i_o psalm_n 130.3_o if_o thou_o lord_n shall_v be_v exeream_n to_o mark_v what_o be_v do_v a_o miss_n who_o may_v stand_v psalm_n 143.2_o enter_v not_o into_o judgement_n with_o thy_o servant_n for_o in_o thy_o sight_n shall_v no_o flesh_n live_v be_v justify_v we_o be_v not_o able_a to_o fulfil_v one_o branch_n of_o any_o command_n by_o reason_n of_o indwelling_a corruption_n so_o that_o i_o appeal_v to_o the_o conscience_n of_o any_o man_n whether_o in_o the_o perfect_a action_n that_o ever_o he_o do_v he_o dare_v stand_v to_o god_n severe_a trial_n thereof_o much_o less_o be_v we_o able_a to_o fulfil_v the_o whole_a law_n and_o therefore_o can_v hope_v for_o righteousness_n by_o it_o as_o the_o prophet_n say_v in_o another_o case_n esa_n 28.20_o the_o bed_n be_v short_a than_o that_o a_o man_n can_v stretch_v himself_o on_o it_o and_o the_o cover_n narrow_a than_o that_o he_o can_v wrap_v himself_o in_o it_o so_o say_v i_o of_o man_n righteousness_n we_o can_v fulfil_v the_o whole_a law_n and_o therefore_o can_v hope_v for_o righteousness_n from_o it_o the_o law_n require_v a_o twofold_a righteousness_n 1_o habitual_a in_o the_o inherent_a holiness_n of_o a_o man_n whole_a person_n 2_o actual_a in_o the_o exercise_n of_o all_o good_a work_v enjoin_v by_o the_o law_n and_o gospel_n and_o forbearance_n of_o the_o contrary_a evil_a work_n both_o in_o the_o thought_n of_o the_o heart_n word_n of_o the_o mouth_n and_o action_n of_o the_o whole_a life_n so_o that_o every_o man_n in_o the_o world_n incur_v damnation_n by_o his_o deed_n and_o therefore_o can_v remain_v justify_v by_o his_o habit_n nay_o he_o be_v more_o guilty_a that_o have_v a_o habit_n of_o inherent_a righteousness_n produce_v act_n of_o unrighteousness_n as_o we_o see_v in_o the_o fall_v angel_n and_o adam_n what_o man_n be_v there_o can_v perform_v these_o two_o command_n to_o love_n god_n with_o all_o the_o heart_n and_o not_o to_o covet_v yea_o look_v upon_o man_n in_o a_o state_n of_o regeneration_n we_o shall_v see_v weakness_n in_o his_o faith_n mark_v 9.24_o sinking_n in_o his_o hope_n psalm_n 43.5_o why_o be_v thou_o cast_v down_o o_o my_o soul_n esa_n 64.6_o the_o prophet_n doubt_v not_o to_o pronounce_v of_o all_o our_o righteousness_n which_o be_v inherent_a in_o our_o person_n compare_v with_o the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n and_o his_o law_n they_o be_v as_o filthy_a rag_n obj._n if_o our_o best_a performance_n be_v stain_v esa_n 64.6_o why_o shall_v we_o perform_v any_o good_a work_n answ_n though_o they_o be_v stain_v there_o be_v some_o good_a in_o they_o there_o be_v gold_n in_o the_o oar_n there_o be_v so_o much_o good_a that_o god_n pardon_v the_o ill_a and_o accept_v the_o good_a a_o sick_a man_n must_v eat_v to_o strengthen_v nature_n though_o much_o of_o what_o he_o eat_v turn_n to_o putrefaction_n this_o righteousness_n of_o work_n can_v justify_v we_o 1_o because_o it_o be_v not_o so_o large_a as_o the_o law_n of_o god_n so_o that_o he_o that_o have_v the_o great_a measure_n of_o it_o have_v much_o indwelling_a corruption_n 2_o saint_n ascribe_v all_o to_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n rom._n 5.9_o be_v justify_v by_o his_o blood_n we_o shall_v be_v save_v from_o wrath_n see_v we_o be_v not_o justify_v by_o inherent_a holiness_n but_o by_o his_o blood_n inherent_a righteousness_n be_v not_o a_o cause_n of_o our_o sonship_n but_o only_o a_o consequent_a of_o it_o gal._n 4.6_o he_o say_v not_o you_o be_v receive_v for_o son_n because_o the_o spirit_n have_v stamp_v upon_o you_o inherent_a holiness_n but_o because_o by_o and_o in_o christ_n you_o be_v receive_v for_o son_n you_o be_v endue_v with_o the_o spirit_n and_o grace_n thereof_o 3_o no_o man_n in_o pang_n of_o conscience_n and_o agony_n of_o death_n can_v trust_v to_o his_o own_o righteousness_n psalm_n 130.3_o 4._o 4_o because_o the_o law_n promise_v life_n upon_o a_o impossible_a condition_n rom._n 10.5_o and_o so_o leave_v the_o conscience_n doubtful_a and_o tremble_a 2_o the_o second_o righteousness_n whereby_o person_n stand_v righteous_a be_v the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v when_o god_n declare_v man_n who_o be_v wicked_a and_o sinner_n by_o nature_n but_o by_o grace_n true_a believer_n to_o be_v free_v and_o absolve_v from_o eternal_a death_n and_o to_o have_v right_a to_o eternal_a life_n for_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n rom._n 8.1_o 2_o 3_o 4._o 1_o thes_n 5.9_o when_o that_o merciful_a father_n do_v see_v we_o to_o be_v oppress_v with_o the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n he_o send_v his_o son_n into_o the_o world_n and_o cast_v upon_o he_o all_o the_o sin_n of_o all_o he_o mean_v the_o elect_a say_v be_v thou_o peter_n that_o denier_n paul_n that_o persecutor_n david_n that_o adulterer_n that_o sinner_n that_o be_v the_o apple_n in_o paradise_n that_o thief_n on_o the_o cross_n luth._o tom._n 4.94_o let_v the_o law_n rule_v over_o the_o flesh_n and_o the_o promise_v sweet_o reign_v in_o the_o conscience_n now_o concern_v justification_n consider_v 1_o the_o efficient_a cause_n 1_o generally_n the_o whole_a trinity_n rom._n 3.30_o it_o be_v one_o god_n who_o shall_v justify_v the_o circumcision_n by_o faith_n and_o the_o uncircumcision_n through_o faith_n rom._n 4.5_o to_o he_o that_o work_v not_o but_o believe_v on_o he_o that_o justifi_v the_o ungodly_a his_o faith_n be_v count_v for_o righteousness_n in_o particular_a the_o father_n justify_v we_o pronunciative_o because_o we_o have_v imputative_a righteousness_n and_o his_o justice_n be_v thereby_o satisfy_v for_o a_o sinner_n be_v not_o just_a before_o god_n because_o he_o be_v justify_v but_o he_o be_v therefore_o justify_v because_o he_o be_v some_o way_n or_o other_o just_a for_o upon_o the_o creature_n righteousness_n the_o act_n of_o god_n in_o justification_n proceed_v for_o upon_o the_o behold_n of_o a_o righteousness_n for_o we_o the_o father_n justify_v we_o pronunciative_o the_o son_n justify_v we_o meritorious_o be_v make_v unto_o we_o of_o god_n righteousness_n 1_o cor._n 1.30_o ephes_n 5.2_o the_o spirit_n justify_v we_o by_o apply_v unto_o we_o christ_n satisfaction_n 1_o cor._n 6.11_o you_o be_v justify_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o our_o god_n 2_o the_o material_a cause_n of_o our_o justification_n be_v the_o blood_n and_o death_n of_o christ_n matth._n 20.28_o he_o give_v his_o life_n a_o ransom_n for_o many_o luke_n 22.20_o this_o cup_n be_v the_o new_a testament_n in_o my_o blood_n act_n 2.28_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v say_v to_o be_v purchase_v with_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n rom._n 3.25_o who_o god_n have_v set_v forth_o to_o be_v the_o propitiation_n for_o our_o sin_n through_o faith_n in_o his_o blood_n when_o we_o teach_v we_o do_v no_o other_o thing_n than_o that_o we_o scatter_v and_o divide_v the_o virtue_n of_o christ_n blood_n among_o the_o people_n luth._o in_o gen._n 49._o col._n 1.14_o 20._o in_o who_o we_o have_v redemption_n through_o his_o blood_n and_o have_v make_v peace_n by_o the_o blood_n of_o his_o cross_n also_o v._o 22._o you_o that_o be_v enemy_n have_v he_o reconcile_v in_o the_o body_n of_o his_o flesh_n through_o death_n heb._n 9.12_o speak_v of_o the_o levitical_a priest_n he_o say_v they_o enter_v into_o the_o holy_a place_n by_o the_o blood_n of_o goat_n but_o christ_n enter_v into_o heaven_n by_o his_o own_o blood_n have_v obtain_v eternal_a redemption_n for_o we_o yea_o
deliver_v ourselves_o in_o temptation_n but_o god_n grace_n be_v sufficient_a for_o we_o 2_o cor._n 12.9_o 10._o for_o his_o strength_n be_v make_v perfect_a in_o our_o weakness_n 3_o to_o learn_v watchfulness_n against_o satan_n temptation_n and_o against_o all_o temptation_n 1_o cor._n 16.13_o watch_v you_o stand_v fast_o in_o the_o faith_n quit_v you_o like_o man_n be_v strong_a 4_o see_v the_o providence_n bridle_v tempter_n and_o temptation_n that_o though_o they_o come_v never_o so_o violent_o upon_o we_o they_o can_v prevail_v further_a than_o god_n permit_v for_o satan_n temptation_n see_v luk._n 22.30_o 31._o satan_n have_v desire_v to_o have_v you_o that_o he_o may_v sift_v you_o but_o i_o have_v pray_v for_o thou_o job_n 1.12_o rev._n 2.10_o and_o as_o god_n providence_n bridle_v satan_n temptation_n so_o do_v it_o the_o temptation_n of_o wicked_a man_n 1_o cor._n 10.13_o 5_o we_o do_v not_o only_o pray_v against_o satan_n who_o be_v the_o great_a artificer_n of_o temptation_n and_o be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o wicked_a one_o 1_o joh._n 2._o 1_o joh._n 5._o but_o also_o against_o every_o thing_n that_o may_v either_o draw_v we_o to_o sin_n or_o hinder_v we_o from_o godliness_n satan_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o great_a burgomaster_n of_o hell_n 6_o we_o be_v here_o teach_v that_o we_o be_v not_o yet_o in_o that_o estate_n wherein_o we_o shall_v be_v free_a from_o all_o temptation_n it_o will_v be_v the_o happiness_n of_o heaven_n that_o we_o shall_v neither_o have_v devil_n nor_o lust_n to_o combat_v with_o 7_o that_o god_n will_v temper_v all_o temptation_n according_a to_o the_o strength_n we_o receive_v either_o by_o increase_v our_o strength_n or_o lessen_v the_o force_n of_o the_o temptation_n rev._n 3.10_o i_o will_v keep_v thou_o from_o the_o hour_n of_o temptation_n 2_o pet._n 2.9_o the_o lord_n know_v how_o to_o deliver_v the_o godly_a in_o time_n of_o temptation_n for_o want_v of_o which_o assistance_n unsound_a man_n in_o time_n of_o temptation_n fall_v away_o luke_n 8.13_o 8_o see_v who_o be_v most_o apt_a to_o be_v tempt_v even_o god_n child_n who_o call_v he_o father_n the_o devil_n have_v carnal_a man_n sure_a and_o so_o never_o tempt_v they_o luke_n 11.21_o when_o a_o strong_a man_n arm_v keep_v his_o palace_n his_o good_n be_v in_o peace_n 9_o see_v what_o a_o filthy_a nature_n we_o have_v which_o be_v ready_a to_o betray_v we_o to_o every_o temptation_n if_o god_n withdraw_v his_o grace_n we_o be_v present_o ready_a to_o fall_v as_o the_o staff_n do_v when_o it_o be_v forsake_v of_o the_o hand_n that_o hold_v it_o we_o see_v it_o in_o god_n child_n samson_n david_n solomon_n hezekiah_n peter_n noah_n lot_n nay_o they_o forsake_v of_o god_n not_o only_o fall_v into_o sin_n but_o lie_v in_o it_o how_o much_o more_o wicked_a man_n 10_o that_o as_o we_o desire_v to_o be_v deliver_v by_o god_n from_o the_o evil_n of_o temptation_n so_o it_o shall_v be_v our_o care_n not_o to_o run_v into_o provocation_n and_o occasion_n joseph_n gen._n 39.10_o though_o potiphar_n wife_n tempt_v he_o from_o day_n to_o day_n yet_o he_o hearken_v not_o to_o lie_v by_o or_o to_o be_v with_o she_o so_o not_o to_o go_v into_o house_n haunt_v with_o the_o devil_n upon_o any_o pretence_n of_o the_o strength_n of_o our_o faith_n this_o be_v as_o if_o we_o shall_v go_v within_o the_o reach_n of_o a_o lion_n or_o mad_a dog_n remember_v the_o son_n of_o sceva_n act_v 19.14_o 16._o who_o go_v in_o the_o devil_n reach_v without_o a_o call_n the_o devil_n both_o tear_v off_o their_o clothes_n and_o wound_v their_o body_n and_o therefore_o if_o godly_a people_n shall_v be_v invite_v to_o pray_v in_o such_o a_o place_n let_v they_o know_v they_o have_v no_o call_n to_o it_o 11_o we_o desire_v not_o only_o to_o be_v deliver_v from_o evil_n of_o wicked_a thing_n but_o that_o even_o good_a thing_n as_o riches_n strength_n health_n beauty_n friend_n may_v not_o become_v a_o snare_n to_o we_o for_o thou_o be_v the_o kingdom_n the_o power_n and_o the_o glory_n for_o ever_o and_o ever_o these_o word_n be_v the_o conclusion_n not_o express_v by_o luke_n it_o contain_v three_o motive_n or_o encouragement_n to_o come_v to_o god_n in_o prayer_n as_o 1_o thou_o be_v the_o kingdom_n that_o be_v all_o kingdom_n be_v thou_o the_o kingdom_n of_o providence_n or_o government_n of_o the_o world_n the_o kingdom_n of_o grace_n and_o glory_n as_o if_o it_o be_v say_v thou_o o_o lord_n have_v all_o kingdom_n in_o thy_o own_o hand_n and_o therefore_o thou_o be_v able_a to_o give_v all_o good_a thing_n to_o thy_o subject_n whether_o grace_n or_o glory_n even_o all_o thing_n necessary_a for_o soul_n and_o body_n and_o to_o deliver_v they_o from_o all_o evil_n and_o to_o bring_v they_o to_o eternal_a redemption_n under_o the_o name_n of_o kingdom_n be_v mean_v the_o power_n of_o right_n now_o the_o kingdom_n be_v god_n 1_o proprietary_o that_o none_o can_v lay_v claim_n to_o it_o in_o this_o manner_n but_o himself_o also_o efficient_o psal_n 95.3_o 4._o 2_o derivative_o or_o hereditary_o so_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o world_n be_v give_v to_o carnal_a man_n dan._n 4.25_o and_o the_o kingdom_n of_o grace_n and_o glory_n to_o saint_n so_o satan_n be_v call_v the_o prince_n of_o the_o power_n of_o the_o air_n eph._n 2.2_o because_o devil_n be_v suffer_v there_o to_o rule_v and_o tempt_v and_o to_o speak_v to_o our_o spirit_n but_o yet_o with_o subordination_n to_o the_o lord_n providence_n the_o power_n here_o be_v another_o argument_n to_o strengthen_v our_o faith_n in_o prayer_n as_o his_o fatherly_a affection_n on_o the_o one_o hand_n so_o his_o kingly_a power_n on_o the_o other_o may_v assure_v we_o that_o he_o be_v both_o willing_a and_o able_a to_o grant_v our_o request_n there_o be_v such_o power_n in_o god_n that_o there_o be_v nothing_o too_o hard_o for_o he_o thou_o have_v not_o only_a potestas_fw-la or_o authority_n of_o all_o thing_n as_o a_o king_n but_o thou_o have_v power_n that_o be_v a_o work_a power_n thou_o alone_o can_v grant_v we_o these_o thing_n and_o no_o other_o can_v grant_v they_o thou_o hinder_v they_o therefore_o we_o come_v to_o thou_o for_o they_o also_o say_v thou_o be_v the_o power_n we_o learn_v that_o his_o power_n be_v not_o derive_v from_o any_o other_o the_o power_n of_o creation_n be_v thou_o and_o the_o power_n of_o sustentation_n of_o all_o thing_n heb._n 1.3_o and_o in_o particular_a the_o power_n whereby_o he_o sustain_v his_o church_n 1_o chr._n 29.11_o 12._o thou_o o_o lord_n be_v the_o greatness_n and_o power_n thou_o raign_a over_o all_o and_o in_o thy_o hand_n be_v power_n the_o power_n of_o god_n be_v see_v in_o these_o thing_n 1_o in_o make_v heaven_n and_o earth_n psalm_n 124.8_o 2_o in_o that_o he_o make_v it_o without_o matter_n man_n can_v work_v without_o matter_n god_n make_v the_o world_n of_o no_o matter_n that_o do_v appear_v heb._n 11.3_o 3_o in_o make_v they_o so_o easy_o even_o by_o the_o word_n of_o his_o mouth_n gen._n 1._o 4_o this_o power_n in_o god_n be_v see_v in_o raise_v up_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o body_n of_o saint_n which_o rise_v with_o he_o and_o the_o body_n of_o saint_n which_o shall_v arise_v john_n 5.28_o ephes_n 1._o 5_o in_o bring_v over_o a_o soul_n to_o believe_v ephes_n 1.19_o god_n incline_v our_o will_n whither_o he_o will_v have_v they_o more_o in_o his_o power_n than_o we_o ourselves_o a_o man_n may_v sit_v under_o ordinance_n all_o his_o life_n and_o not_o be_v convert_v if_o this_o power_n put_v not_o forth_o itself_o this_o power_n in_o god_n be_v twofold_a 1_o absolute_a and_o that_o be_v twofold_a 1_o independent_a in_o that_o none_o have_v power_n to_o call_v he_o to_o account_v job_n 33.13_o he_o give_v not_o account_n of_o any_o of_o his_o matter_n none_o have_v power_n to_o ask_v he_o why_o he_o make_v one_o crooked_a another_o straight_o why_o he_o call_v one_o and_o pass_v by_o another_o why_o he_o gift_n one_o and_o not_o another_o why_o one_o be_v a_o king_n and_o another_o a_o slave_n this_o power_n be_v authority_n 2_o infinite_a and_o unlimited_a whereby_o god_n be_v able_a to_o do_v more_o than_o he_o do_v he_o never_o so_o put_v forth_o his_o power_n but_o he_o can_v put_v it_o forth_o further_o if_o he_o please_v matth._n 9_o god_n be_v able_a of_o stone_n to_o raise_v up_o child_n to_o abraham_n he_o have_v make_v a_o world_n and_o can_v make_v more_o if_o he_o please_v matth._n 26.55_o think_v thou_o not_o that_o i_o can_v have_v pray_v to_o my_o father_n and_o he_o will_v have_v give_v i_o more_o than_o twelve_o legion_n of_o angel_n 2_o there_o be_v a_o actual_a
power_n in_o god_n whereby_o he_o be_v able_a to_o do_v whatsoever_o he_o will_v as_o to_o beget_v a_o son_n equal_a to_o himself_o in_o all_o thing_n and_o can_v he_o not_o do_v this_o he_o be_v not_o omnipotent_a this_o he_o do_v 1_o immediate_o psalm_n 115.3_o 2_o mediate_o use_v the_o mean_n of_o his_o own_o appoint_v use_v for_o application_n 1_o to_o blame_v our_o darkness_n that_o can_v conceive_v this_o power_n of_o god_n object_n but_o if_o there_o be_v such_o a_o power_n in_o god_n why_o do_v we_o not_o perceive_v it_o as_o we_o do_v bodily_a force_n answ_n because_o it_o work_v invisible_o as_o the_o influence_n of_o the_o heaven_n do_v upon_o the_o body_n of_o man_n and_o beast_n 2_o the_o bright_a light_n while_o it_o shine_v in_o a_o thick_a cloud_n be_v not_o behold_v so_o the_o power_n of_o god_n while_o it_o work_v in_o our_o weakness_n be_v not_o behold_v so_o powerful_a as_o it_o be_v in_o itself_o 2_o to_o tax_v they_o who_o limit_v this_o power_n psalm_n 78.18_o 19_o 20._o israel_n anger_v god_n say_v can_v god_n prepare_v a_o table_n in_o the_o wilderness_n can_v he_o give_v bread_n can_v he_o provide_v flesh_n they_o do_v not_o say_v he_o can_v not_o but_o only_o question_v his_o power_n they_o limit_v the_o holy_a one_o of_o israel_n v._o 41._o this_o be_v moses_n sin_n num._n 11.19_o to_o 24._o when_o god_n say_v he_o will_v feed_v 600000_o man_n with_o flesh_n a_o whole_a month_n he_o can_v not_o believe_v it_o martha_n can_v not_o believe_v christ_n be_v able_a to_o raise_v up_o lazarus_n be_v dead_a four_o day_n john_n 11.39_o so_o when_o elisha_n prophesy_v of_o such_o a_o plenty_n next_o day_n the_o nobleman_n say_v if_o the_o lord_n will_v make_v window_n in_o heaven_n may_v this_o thing_n be_v 2_o king_n 7.19_o 20._o 2_o information_n 1_o that_o there_o be_v nothing_o too_o hard_o for_o god_n gen._n 18.14_o he_o have_v bring_v light_n out_o of_o darkness_n 2_o cor._n 4.6_o good_a out_o of_o evil_a gen._n 50.20_o man_n may_v make_v good_a out_o of_o natural_a evil_n as_o out_o of_o poisonous_a ingredient_n but_o not_o out_o of_o moral_a evil_n we_o be_v too_o apt_a to_o draw_v a_o scantling_n of_o god_n by_o ourselves_o 3_o consolation_n to_o god_n people_n 1_o in_o strait_n gen._n 22.10_o when_o abraham_n be_v ready_a to_o slay_v isaac_n god_n appear_v to_o he_o out_o of_o heaven_n and_o bid_v he_o hold_v his_o hand_n gen._n 22.14_o when_o esau_n come_v against_o jacob_n god_n power_n be_v see_v in_o turn_v his_o heart_n to_o jacob_n gen._n 33.10_o i_o have_v see_v thy_o face_n as_o the_o face_n of_o god_n that_o be_v i_o have_v see_v god_n in_o thy_o love_a look_n so_o in_o queen_n hester_n time_n god_n still_o put_v forth_o his_o power_n in_o behalf_n of_o upright_a man_n 2_o chron._n 16.9_o 2_o in_o sad_a and_o forlorn_a condition_n be_v you_o in_o danger_n he_o be_v a_o present_a help_n psalm_n 46.1_o be_v you_o indispose_v to_o good_a he_o that_o can_v bring_v beautiful_a flower_n out_o of_o ground_n seem_o sapless_a in_o winter_n can_v do_v so_o in_o grace_n be_v lust_n strong_a god_n can_v subdue_v they_o mic._n 7.18_o be_v enemy_n potent_a god_n can_v make_v they_o friend_n prov._n 16.7_o 4_o terror_n to_o wicked_a man_n that_o have_v such_o a_o powerful_a god_n against_o they_o god_n can_v arm_v all_o creature_n against_o thou_o worm_n to_o eat_v up_o herod_n act_v 12.23_o fly_n and_o louse_n to_o infest_v pharaoh_n though_o hand_n join_v in_o hand_n the_o wicked_a shall_v not_o be_v unpunished_a prov._n 11.21_o see_v judge_n 2.15_o whither_o soever_o they_o go_v the_o hand_n of_o god_n be_v against_o they_o for_o evil_a but_o especial_o in_o another_o world_n rom_n 9.17_o 22._o there_o god_n will_v make_v his_o powerful_a wrath_n know_v psalm_n 90.11_o 5_o exhortation_n 1_o to_o make_v this_o powerful_a god_n thy_o friend_n man_n strive_v to_o make_v powerful_a man_n their_o friend_n make_v god_n thy_o friend_n psalm_n 27.1_o isai_n 51.12_o 13._o and_o fear_v to_o offend_v he_o we_o be_v afraid_a to_o offend_v man_n of_o power_n much_o more_o fear_n to_o offend_v this_o powerful_a god_n see_v a_o notable_a place_n josh_n 4.23_o 24._o 2_o to_o go_v about_o all_o your_o action_n in_o the_o power_n of_o god_n in_o this_o power_n asa_n go_v against_o a_o million_o of_o man_n 2_o chron._n 14.11_o it_o be_v all_o one_o with_o thou_o to_o save_v whether_o with_o many_o or_o few_o jehosaphat_n 2_o chron._n 20.12_o we_o know_v not_o what_o to_o do_v but_o our_o eye_n be_v upon_o thou_o against_o spiritual_a enemy_n also_o be_v strong_a in_o the_o power_n of_o his_o might_n ephes_n 6.10_o phil._n 4.13_o psalm_n 71.16_o 3_o labour_n to_o know_v this_o power_n we_o love_v to_o know_v the_o strength_n of_o person_n or_o thing_n to_o which_o we_o trust_v 2_o tim._n 1.12_o i_o know_v who_o i_o have_v trust_v 4_o believe_v this_o power_n without_o belief_n hereof_o we_o can_v believe_v the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n the_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n his_o power_n be_v see_v 1_o in_o that_o he_o can_v do_v whatsoever_o be_v possible_a to_o be_v do_v a_o angel_n can_v do_v what_o belong_v to_o a_o angel_n a_o ox_n or_o horse_n what_o belong_v to_o they_o but_o they_o can_v do_v the_o work_n of_o a_o man_n but_o god_n can_v do_v what_o be_v possible_a 2_o he_o can_v do_v what_o he_o will_v psalm_n 115.3_o whatsoever_o the_o lord_n please_v that_o do_v he_o isai_n 46.10_o matth_n 8.2_o 3_o he_o can_v put_v forth_o his_o power_n more_o in_o one_o than_o in_o another_o as_o he_o put_v forth_o his_o power_n more_o in_o scald_a oil_n that_o it_o burn_v more_o strong_o than_o scald_a water_n the_o fire_n be_v more_o in_o the_o oil_n than_o in_o the_o water_n so_o the_o power_n of_o god_n be_v more_o in_o saint_n than_o wicked_a man_n more_o in_o one_o saint_n at_o one_o time_n than_o another_o more_o in_o paul_n than_o in_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n more_o in_o some_o part_n of_o a_o duty_n than_o another_o part_n of_o it_o 4_o his_o power_n be_v not_o tie_v to_o mean_n he_o work_v without_o mean_n at_o the_o blow_n of_o ram_n horn_n the_o wall_n of_o jericho_n fall_v josh_n 6.20_o judge_n 6.12_o gideon_n by_o three_o hundred_o man_n overcome_v a_o army_n of_o above_o a_o hundred_o and_o twenty_o thousand_o yea_o he_o work_v against_o mean_n bring_v his_o people_n through_o the_o red_a sea_n exod._n 14.21_o 5_o whatsoever_o he_o do_v he_o do_v it_o without_o labour_n or_o weariness_n isai_n 40.28_o the_o creator_n of_o the_o end_n of_o the_o earth_n faint_v not_o neither_o be_v weary_a 6_o he_o be_v always_o powerful_a prince_n be_v powerful_a but_o they_o may_v die_v or_o their_o power_n be_v diminish_v or_o resist_v not_o so_o with_o god_n deut._n 32.39_o none_o can_v deliver_v out_o of_o his_o hand_n 7_o all_o the_o power_n that_o any_o creature_n have_v be_v in_o god_n whether_o power_n of_o authority_n or_o power_n of_o force_n john_n 19.11_o thou_o can_v have_v no_o power_n neither_o of_o authority_n nor_o force_n unless_o it_o be_v give_v thou_o from_o above_o say_v christ_n to_o pilate_n when_o a_o enemy_n lift_v up_o his_o hand_n to_o hurt_v we_o he_o have_v the_o power_n of_o his_o strength_n from_o god_n if_o we_o see_v a_o bear_n or_o lion_n in_o the_o hand_n of_o our_o father_n we_o need_v not_o be_v afraid_a 8_o his_o power_n can_v frustrate_v and_o annihilate_v all_o other_o power_n as_o the_o babel-builder_n the_o egyptian_n god_n take_v off_o their_o charet-wheel_n exod._n 14.25_o and_o the_o sea_n overwhelm_v they_o v._o 26._o haman_n combination_n against_o the_o church_n all_o power_n come_v against_o god_n his_o cause_n and_o people_n be_v as_o if_o a_o pitcher_n shall_v rise_v against_o a_o stone-wall_n or_o as_o if_o the_o thorn_n and_o briar_n shall_v put_v themselves_o in_o arm_n against_o the_o fire_n isai_n 27.4_o job_n 9.4_o 1_o cor._n 10.21_o object_n but_o i_o doubt_v not_o of_o his_o power_n but_o of_o his_o will_n answ_n his_o will_n be_v see_v in_o his_o promise_n if_o we_o be_v confirm_v of_o his_o power_n and_o believe_v his_o promise_n you_o need_v not_o be_v trouble_v object_n but_o if_o this_o power_n be_v so_o comfortable_a how_o shall_v i_o know_v it_o answ_n believe_v it_o christ_n will_v not_o show_v miraculous_a power_n where_o unbelief_n hinder_v matth._n 13.58_o 2_o see_v god_n in_o the_o glass_n of_o his_o word_n jer._n 32.17_o and_o work_n as_o in_o make_v the_o world_n rom._n 1.20_o in_o bind_v in_o the_o sea_n jer._n 5.22_o by_o the_o sand._n 3_o pray_v god_n to_o open_v thy_o eye_n to_o behold_v it_o as_o elisha_n pray_v for_o his_o